Harry's Unlikely Marriage to Riddle
Harry's Unlikely Marriage to Riddle
Rating: Explicit
Archive Warning: Graphic Depictions Of Violence
Category: M/M
Fandom: Harry Potter - J. K. Rowling
Relationships: Harry Potter/Tom Riddle, Harry Potter/Tom Riddle | Voldemort, Harry
Potter/Voldemort
Additional Tags: universe hopping, Dimension Travel, Alternate Universe Travel, Time
Travel, Bodyswap, Soulswap, Arranged Marriage, Enemies to Lovers,
Pretty Harry Potter, Minister for Magic Tom Riddle
Language: English
Stats: Published: 2023-09-09 Updated: 2025-02-09 Words: 100,744 Chapters:
12/15
Aphelion
by TimaeusKosmou
Summary
Harry gets hit by a killing curse and instead of dying travels to a different reality where he is
the bratty husband of the Minister of Magic Tom Riddle. Harry realizes that his husband
actually hates him and can barely tolerate his scandalous and petty behaviour and married
him only for political connections with the Potter family. That's all good since he doesn't like
Riddle either. Tom, on the other hand, is confused by his pureblood husband's new and
strange behaviour.
Notes
I love dimension travel stories, so here is another one. I hope you guys like this one as well.
Please let me know what you think of this story and if it's worth continuing.
Chapter 1
Harry felt a surge of energy surround him all at once. His limbs froze instantaneously as the
spell cast by Voldemort enveloped him. It felt like it was consuming him from the inside,
eating away his magic and destroying his soul. Harry had never felt like this before. This was
probably how death felt; cold and unforgiving. He scanned the desolate landscape, searching
for something, anything, to catch his gaze and bring him one last piece of happiness, but
amidst the ruins of Hogwarts, there was nothing to be found. The chaos had enveloped
everything, and all his friends were either fighting in the distance or were already dead.
Everything went blank. The light died, and the sounds disappeared like a fading whisper.
His corpse was left behind on the ground in the ruins of the place that had become his home.
And like everything in the world, his life simply ended.
Sounds reached him after what felt like an eternity. He was sure he had died, but maybe the
spell hadn't finished its work. He needed to move, but he was so tired. Maybe death wasn't so
bad after all. He could simply lie there and relax and let it all just end.
It was comfortable. This was the first thing that stirred the growing panic in his mind. How
was he feeling so comfortable? It felt like he was lying on silk sheets and surrounded by the
softest pillows and a warm blanket. He could feel the smooth touch of the material sliding
over his bare legs.
Harry groaned. His head hurt. He must have fallen on the concrete block and torn his head
open. His brain was probably spilling all over the place.
"Master," it was a quiet voice, gently speaking and nudging him. It almost sounded like
Dobby. "Lord Riddle is angry. He is waiting outside. He wants to see you. I told him Master
Harry is sleeping, but he insisted."
It went over Harry's head what was being whispered. He wanted to sleep. He moved his legs,
and the soft touch of the blanket lulled him further into the sweet cocoon of slumber. He
pushed a leg out to let the cool breeze touch his bare skin.
"Ugh," he groaned again, pushing his head into the lap of pillows.
"He is furious," the voice whispered and then gently rocked him. "He got mad when he read
the news. It must be the article on the front page about Master Harry."
Front page? Article? He had no idea what these words meant, but he wanted all the sounds to
stop so he could continue sleeping.
"Open the door," he heard an irritated demand come from distance, punctuated with a rough
knocking sound. "You need to explain yourself. I will break the door if I have to."
He squinted, trying to adjust to the brightly illuminated room. His eyes instantly teared up in
response. He swept away the teardrops on his cheeks with the sleeve of his nightgown,
vaguely noticing that he was wearing a needle-embroidered slip.
The room was huge. Harry had never been in such a big bedroom. It was a beautiful room
with tall ceilings and enormous windows. The heavy curtains with the most intricate lace
were drawn aside, and the light was rushing inside through the glass panels. The furniture
was cream and gold with the most elaborate woodwork, and there were vases of roses
everywhere; on the windowsills, the shelves, the dresser, the bedside tables, the table in front
of the plush sofa and even on the vanity desk.
The place practically looked like a bridal photoshoot studio or something to that effect. Harry
was never too interested, nor had enough time to know, and the constant impending doom
prevented him from even flipping through a magazine.
What in the bloody hell was going on? Where was he?
He turned his head and looked at the timid elf standing by his bed, staring down at the floor
skittishly. "Dobby?"
How could this be? His heart leaped as soon as the elf lifted his head and looked at him with
worry. He wanted to sprint forward and hug the elf and make sure he was real, but the knocks
on the door became more chaotic and demanding, snapping his attention away from the
house-elf.
"I will not tolerate this disrespect," Harry heard them say. "You need to open the door right
now."
"He is furious," Dobby supplied as if an explanation of the emotional state of whoever this
was was needed.
Harry slipped out of bed and realised with horror that he was wearing something really
strange. It was sheer nightwear with embroidered silk sleeves. Someone must have given him
whatever clothes they had because this outfit was bizarre and definitely didn't belong to him.
He looked around, trying to spot his wand.
He rummaged through the drawers of the bedside table, trying to find it, and in the process,
realised that his arms were thin. It was almost like he had lost a lot of his muscle mass. He
was never particularly well-fed, but this screamed starvation. He must have been in bed,
recovering from whatever nasty curse it was for months.
Something was different though, and he couldn't ignore the fact that Dobby was well and
alive standing beside him. His head still ached like the sound of millions of tiny grass-
mowing machines was being broadcast into his brain.
"Who is that screaming person outside?" he asked Dobby, wincing and clutching his head.
The pain throbbed like war drums alongside the knocking on the door that wouldn't stop.
Dobby gave him a worried look like Harry was insane. "That's your husband, Master Harry."
Husband? Yes, maybe Harry was insane. He was having a hallucination where Dobby was
alive, and Harry was married and had a husband. He only barely dated Ginny and had a peck
with Cho. And he was supposed to believe he had a husband?
"Dobby," the man outside spoke in a clear, authoritative voice. "Open the door. I know you
are there. If you do not obey, I will punish you."
Dobby looked at Harry only for a short second with an apologetic look in his eyes, and then
he appeared by the door and opened it.
The man standing in front of the door, dressed in an immaculate suit with his dark hair neatly
brushed, walked inside. He stared at Harry, rage burning in his eyes. And Harry recognised
him.
"Leave us," his eyes were focused on Harry, as he spoke brusquely to Dobby—his rough, low
voice came in a firm command, making the elf vanish immediately.
The tiny hair on the back of Harry's neck stood up in fear. The intense gaze concentrated on
him almost made Harry squirm. He recognised him right away. He looked young, healthy,
and the strange disfigurement, that incited fear, wasn't present. The red, snake-eyes were not
there either, but his beautiful grey eyes still managed to fill Harry's brain with dread. He was
tall and looked imposing in the suit he was wearing. His perfect jaw and cheekbones making
him look like a supermodel from those high fashion magazines.
The enraged expression on his face didn't take away one bit from his striking beauty. Harry
scrambled backwards, not seeing any other way to protect himself and fell down on the bed
in panicked frenzy. Young and handsome-looking Lord Voldemort, not only seemed furious,
he also looked irritated like he couldn't be bothered with this and didn't have time for this
bullshit.
His wand wasn't drawn, but it comforted Harry very little because he could see the wand
holster. It appeared the rejuvenated Dark Lord didn't perceive Harry as much of a threat as he
didn't even try to reach for his wand and strode forward towards Harry in measured steps.
He was holding something in his hand that looked like rolled-up Daily Prophet, and part of
Harry suspected there was a hidden wand inside the newspaper.
"What is this?" young Voldemort threw the newspaper on the bed. Harry moved further away
from him until his back hit the plush headboard of the bed.
Newspaper rolled open, and Harry caught an image of a couple in a passionate hug on the
front page with the title "Trouble in Paradise? Minister Riddle's socialite husband Harry
Potter Riddle caught in an intimate shot with a sweetheart from Hogwarts."
Harry scowled. Dobby's words came to mind and cold sweat rushed through his body. This
was his supposed husband? Tom Riddle? This didn't make any sense. Even magic had its
bounds.
"Must you ruin my reputation?" he demanded angrily, coming closer to Harry. "I warned you.
I told you to behave, but you just can't help yourself, can you?"
Harry's brain short-circuited. He was completely baffled and at a loss for words. He couldn't
imagine how he could have been married to Tom Riddle, as the article claimed. They didn't
even live in the same era, so they could not have met, and it was inconceivable that the self-
proclaimed Dark Lord would not have tried to murder him.
He looked young, but it must have been magic, right? The only thing Harry could think of
was that somehow he was in a different reality where Tom Riddle wasn't Voldemort and was
born in the same era as him. But if it was the case how did he even end up here?
Harry was still stunned to make any comments or even try to get away.
"Nott?" he seethed. "You decided to get drunk and throw yourself into Nott's arms? I don't
care what you do with your time, but I won't tolerate you dragging my name through mud,
humiliating me with your conduct. I told you if this happens again, I will kill whoever you
find yourself in bed with."
Riddle leaned closer until Harry could feel his hot breath on his face. Under normal
circumstances, he probably would have reacted differently to having Voldemort so close in
his personal space, but everything was happening all at once, and Harry was frozen in place
as an avalanche of conflicting emotions were at war in his head. He was close... too close.
Harry could smell him.
It was strangely enticing and that fact was messing with his head.
He tried to move himself further, but Riddle grabbed his chin violently and pulled it up until
their eyes met. "Did I not warn you?" he asked in a low threatening whisper. "Why can't you
be good and do once as you are told, huh?"
"Let go," Harry managed through gritted teeth, grabbing his hand and trying to free himself
from his grip.
His grip was too tight or Harry's body was too malnourished and weak to be able to move
him away. He struggled trying to pry Tom's fingers open, but he was unmoving and his
expression was dark and harsh. Harry was pretty sure that a bruise would be left on his face if
he didn't let go. He tried to slap him on his arm, but instead, Tom let go of his chin and
grabbed his hand, stopping his movement.
"You, dimwitted, dumb brat," he snapped. "Do you even understand how much trouble you
have created?"
Harry hurried to rub his aching chin and glared at the man still hovering over him. "You think
I am going to let this slide?" he asked. "You know that Nott works for me, right?"
Harry didn't care about Nott, and he had no idea what he had done other than wake up in this
strange place after battling Voldemort. Maybe he was dead, and this was hell.
"I don't understand what you are talking about," he mumbled, trying to push Tom away, but
he remained seated on the bed, looming over Harry, still firmly clutching Harry's arm.
"My lord," it was someone else's squeaky voice that interrupted whatever this was. Harry
looked up. Tom's broad shoulders had obscured the sight, and he couldn't see who was
standing by the ajar door to this bedroom which he assumed belonged to him.
Tom turned his head. "Pettigrew," he growled. "Wait outside. I didn't give you the authority to
roam in my house."
"I am sorry, sir," he stuttered. "The meeting at the Ministry with Mr Malfoy is scheduled for
9."
Harry couldn't see anything, but he heard the door shut. Riddle turned to him and glared at
him. "This isn't over," he warned him. "Try to behave. I need to go. On top of all of my work,
I need to sort the mess you have created, brainless little bitch."
Wow! Harry decided to just ignore him and hope Tom Riddle would go away. This made no
sense. He needed to find out what happened to him, and he clearly couldn't do anything while
the Dark Lord was hanging around calling him names.
"I will see you in the evening," he told Harry curtly as he got up. "Be ready for the dinner and
try not to act out."
Harry remained still on the bed until Riddle left and closed the door behind him. He took a
deep breath, trying to gather his thoughts. He needed to find his wand and come up with a
plan. Hermione was the one who always came up with good plans. He wished he could see
his friend. He had no idea what happened to her and if she was still alive.
"Dobby," he called.
The elf immediately appeared in a quick pop. Harry couldn't get used to this even after so
many years.
"Master Harry?" he looked concerned. "Can Dobby help?"
"Where is my wand, Dobby?" he asked, quickly turning to the elf and grabbing his tiny
hands. "I really need to figure out what's happening?"
"Master has locked Master Harry's wand in his safe after the last accident," Dobby told him
and added regretfully. "Master Harry knows that Dobby can't open Master Tom's safe."
"What accident?" Harry wrinkled his nose. This wasn't good. Things seemed worse and
worse. He was completely defenceless and living under the same roof as Voldemort.
Dobby gave him a confused look. Harry realised that the elf must have found it strange that
Harry didn't know details from his own life, but instead of explaining anything to the elf, he
just looked hopeful and squeezed the elf's hands reassuringly which seemed to surprise the elf
more.
"You know the accident at the Black house," Dobby told him slowly, and it seemed like there
was something more that Harry needed to know. "You almost killed Master Sirius when you
cast a drying spell wrong. Master Sirius spent a month at St Mungo's. Master Tom took your
wand away after that since it wasn't the first time..."
Harry laughed. He was a moron? No way. It must have been orchestrated by Riddle, trying to
restrict his access to magic. Harry felt a wave of anger pass through his mind, and he fisted
his hands. He couldn't get angry. He needed to stay calm and reason rationally to get out of
this situation. He moved about the room anxiously trying to come up with a solution. He
wished Hermione and Ron were with him to help him make sense of this.
Clearly, this was a different world or maybe he had time travelled. He needed to find out for
sure. The half-rolled newspaper was still sitting on the bed. The date on it that could give him
a clue. He reached over and grabbed it.
This meant he was 4 years into the future? This couldn't be true, because Dobby wouldn't be
alive and neither would Sirius for him to be almost killed by an incorrectly cast drying spell.
Harry still had the headache and thinking about this was making it worse.
Just because he couldn't use his wand didn't mean he couldn't use magic. Harry had done
some minor wandless magic. The situation was dire, and if he knew the right spell, maybe he
could find out what happened to him.
Dobby looked even more confused by Harry's behaviour and looked at him like he had a
second head newly grown and attached to his neck.
Harry blinked. "That's fine Dobby," he sighed. "I am just trying to clear some things up. Just
show me the way."
Dobby nodded dutifully. "Dobby will take Master Harry to the library."
Harry followed the elf, and as he was passing by the large vanity table, he caught a glimpse
of his own reflection and froze in his tracks. The face looking back at him looked almost
nothing like him. He slowly moved closer to the large mirrors and stared at himself, moving
his arms up and down as if to make sure that he was actually looking at his reflection and not
some enchanted painting.
What was going on? What was up with his face and body? He didn't look like a teenager
anymore. His facial features were more refined and soft. His eyes were the only thing that he
truly recognised. They still looked the same. Everyone told him he had his mother's eyes, and
he kept that thought as a warm escape to go to whenever he was feeling lonely.
He was taller than before, skinner too and the girly nightclothes he was wearing didn't do
much to make him look like himself. He wondered if these clothes belonged to him. They
seemed a little going too far.
Did he have veela blood or something? He somehow looked otherworldly like a beautiful,
ethereal creature that could seduce a person to its death. It was clearly him, but very different
at the same time. He couldn't detect any magic on himself indicating of glamour charm so it
must have been part of whatever this was.
"Yes," he mumbled absent-mindedly a little dazed that he looked like a goddamn nymph. "Do
I have any robes I can put on? I don't want to prance around in this?"
He gestured the clothing he was wearing. Dobby vanished and popped back with pair of
fluffy dark green robes. Harry would have scoffed if he cared enough, but the bloody thing
was warm and comfy. He didn't have the best life and never even indulged in the niceties of
life-be it muggle and wizard. Now wearing the fluffy robe, he felt regret. This was nice even
if it was rum.
Dobby took him through a large corridor to a very spacious hall, and then they walked into
the largest library Harry had seen in his life. Hogwarts library didn't have this many books.
This place was enormous. The house itself seemed very big. He could probably hide in here,
and nobody would find him unless they used magic.
The elf nodded and vanished. Harry looked around. It was going to be a challenge to find the
right book.
It was hard to say how much time he spent in the library, going through piles of books, trying
to find something helpful, but he guessed that had he had his wand, this would have gone
much faster. He wanted to give up and take a break when he stumbled upon a book; "Travel
between Worlds".
Harry skimmed through the book quickly, trying to find any information that would seem
relevant for his case. He couldn't be certain that he was altogether in a different reality, but
other than that, his other theory was that he was dead stuck in a bizarre afterlife or or had
simply time travelled.
The book went on for pages on how it was nearly impossible to travel to a different version
of reality, but insisted those existed, and the travel would require enormous amounts of
energy and soul magic which was so dangerous that no sane witch or wizard would even
think of meddling in it.
A piece of Voldemort's soul was inside him, and the man was insane. So, yes, there was soul
magic involved in his case.
"Travel would leave a magical mark on the traveler's body," Harry read. He flipped through
the pages to find the supposed symbol that would be left behind if he indeed travelled
through dimensions and realities. He pulled out his robe and started looking at his body,
trying to see if there were any marks or symbols. There seemed nothing until Harry lifted his
foot and stared with horror at the symbol depicted in the book.
"No!" he grumbled.
This was bad. The book stated that the only way to travel was to actually die and have magic
transport his soul into an available and corresponding form in the other reality which would
need to be dead or dying too. This is what made this type of travel especially dangerous and
nearly impossible. This meant this version of Harry was either dead by the time Harry found
himself transported into his body or dying.
This version of Harry was married to Tom Riddle. Of course, he would die young. But Riddle
didn't seem surprised to find him alive. Harry wondered what really happened to this version
of himself.
The book didn't give any instructions on how to go back, but Harry realised that there was no
going back since his body in his own reality was probably dead. He was stuck here.
He closed the book and tried to take a deep breath to calm his frayed nerves. Well, he could
just lay low and live a peaceful life, maybe find a way and get rid of Riddle or maybe even
better just go and live as a muggle and leave this whole magical mess behind.
"Master Harry," Dobby's voice startled him, and he dropped the book.
The elf looked worried. "Mistress is here. She wants to see you, and she looks worried."
"Mistress?" Harry wondered who the mistress was, and if it meant more problems for him.
Harry's heartbeat became faster. This was a different reality. This was where Tom Riddle
probably never became Voldemort and never killed his parents. He rushed forward.
"Where is she?"
"In the drawing room," Dobby replied.
Harry bolted forward, feeling his heart leaping out of his body and realising he had no idea
where the drawing room was.
"Dobby," he called. "Can you perhaps take me where she is? I am feeling a little unwell and
can't orient myself properly."
"You had too much firewhiskey yesterday," Dobby explained. "Master was very upset about
that. He brought you home in his arms because you couldn't walk."
Well, this version of Harry sure seemed something. He wondered if he died of alcohol
poisoning or Riddle was involved in the death, after all.
Dobby took him to the most over-the-top room with paintings on the walls and beautiful
antique furniture comfortably arranged around. His hands shook when he spotted his mother.
Lily Potter looked just like he remembered her from all the photographs he had of her. She
didn't look old at all. Dressed in a beautiful gown and her hair carefully styled, she looked so
beautiful. Harry's eyes teared up, and he rushed towards her and wrapped his arms around his
mum.
"Aww, sweetheart," she mumbled, wrapping her hands around him. "It's going to be alright."
Hot tears went down his face. He never had the chance to hug his mother, feel her love. Her
love saved him, but he needed her affection growing up and daydreamed of being able to
spend time with her.
"Your father is angry about what happened," she told him, patting his back gently. "But I will
speak with him, don't worry."
Harry didn't let go. He squeezed his arms around her tighter, trying to feel safe. His father
was alive. His family was alive. Maybe things weren't as bad after all. Lily stroked his hair
gently.
"What has happened, darling?" she asked. "I saw the news. Tom must be furious. Didn't I tell
you to be more discreet about these things?"
Harry sobbed, still overwhelmed with the realisation that his parents were alive.
"Oh," she cooed. "It will be fine. I am sure we can resolve this. Tell me what happened. I will
talk to your father. He will take care of it."
Lily Potter fussed over him like he was a little child. And Harry watched his mum with awe
and affection.
"Harry, sweetheart," she cupped his face in her hands gently. "Tell me everything."
"I don't remember anything," he said with a smile, wiping his tears away.
"You shouldn't get caught with Nott anymore," she told him like this was a normal mother-
son conversation. "It's best if you stop seeing him at all and deny having any involvement
with him if your father or husband ask you."
"What?" Harry stared at his mum, not quite understanding what she was trying to convey.
"Your husband will kill him if your father doesn't first," she told him. "They are too
concerned about their reputation, and you should have been more careful—"
"Mum, I don't care about Nott," Harry stopped her. "I am not with Nott or anything."
He waved his hands awkwardly, wondering if this version of himself was actually having a
romance with Nott, cheating on the Dark Lord. Why did he even marry the man in the first
place?
"But the picture in the Daily Prophet," she mumbled confused. "How did that happen?"
"I was drunk," Harry said, remembering that Dobby told him he came home really drunk. "I
don't even know what happened myself. I was so drunk I couldn't even walk. Tom carried
me. I must have fell down or something and maybe Nott caught me."
He just made up whatever seemed would make his mother feel at peace and seemed probable
enough.
Lily sighed, looking relieved. "I am going to rip that bitch Rita Skeeter's hair," she said
indignant, surprising Harry. "She just likes writing trash about you. And you know how
people are. They like jealous gossip. You should really be more careful, sweetheart. Your
husband is the Minister of Magic and people watch your every move."
Minister of Magic? Riddle sure had chosen a more interesting path. The article did mention
that, but Harry somehow didn't think about it until now.
"All of these people trying to get a piece of you," she sighed dramatically. "The lurne blood
giving you those looks, and no one can resist you."
Harry had no idea what a lurne was, but he suspected that there was some mythical blood
involved since he truly looked almost unreal.
"It's a blessing and a curse," she brushed his hair back with her fingers. "I know you don't
like Tom. But your father does, and he knows best."
Harry raised an eyebrow. This slowly was turning into a very uncomfortable situation. James
Potter wanted Harry to marry Riddle? Why? And why didn't Harry have any say in the
decisions concerning his life? Was he like a housewife in the 50s or something?
"You know what," Lily said, getting up suddenly. "We need to go shopping. Couple of nice
outfits at Madam Malkin's, and you will make everyone forget about the bad press. Besides,
the dinner party tonight is very important for your father, and I think we both should glam up
with some new robes."
That's right. Riddle mentioned something about evening dinner. Harry couldn't give less
fucks about outfits, but any time spent with his mother meant time spent happily, so he
smiled and got up, showing excitement.
Lily didn't read this as eager enthusiasm, because she pursed her lips and nodded. "But don't
worry, I will speak with him and explain that the whole thing with Nott's son Theo was a
misunderstanding. Your dad's going to forget his anger the moment he sees your pretty face,
my darling."
The relationship dynamic with his mother and father seemed very unusual. Harry realised
that this version of himself must have been very close with his mum. It still felt strange, and
Harry had an uneasy feeling in his stomach.
"Thanks, Mum," he said, smiling sweetly at her even though he didn't care about whatever
the situation was with the whole news article about him and Nott. That was old Harry, and if
he liked Nott, he liked Nott. Clearly, his dad was a controlling person in this universe who
saddled Harry with a literal psychopath. Riddle never shied from killing people, splitting his
soul, or engaging in other disturbing activities. And this guy was his husband chosen by
James Potter.
Harry loved his father, of course, but he recognised that he didn't know the real James Potter,
the pureblood hotshot who bullied Snape, his mother's best friend. His mother, on the other
hand, was a literal sweetheart no matter the universe and reality.
"Of course, baby," she smiled back at him. "As for Tom, we will get something so stunning
for you that he will forget he was ever mad at you."
She winked. Harry almost vomited into his own mouth. He gave his mum a strained smile,
pretending that he was on board. There was no need to worry her.
Chapter 2
Chapter Notes
Guys, the response to the last chapter was so positive that I just couldn't post a follow up
chapter right away. Thank you so much for all the kind words. Hope you enjoy this
chapter.
Madam Malkin's shop was crowded. Everyone stared at them as soon as they walked in.
Harry wanted to wear a simple pair of robes, but his mother insisted on a cream silk button-
down shirt and a pair of burgundy cashmere trousers. Harry didn't look ridiculous, honestly,
with the way everything was, he was expecting full-on dresses in his wardrobe, but there was
nothing unconventional. Everything was made from luxurious materials and had very
subdued colours.
Probably, the style came with being the Minister's husband, or maybe this version of himself
was just an elegant type of stylish or whatever. Clearly, he shopped with his mum, so things
definitely looked good.
The stares and the whispering didn't stop. Harry knew this. This was familiar. He was used to
this, so it wasn't hard to ignore, especially with the knowledge that his mum and dad were
alive. They could gossip all they wanted.
"Lady Potter," Madam Malkin leaned in to kiss and hug his mother.
"Paula," Lily greeted cheerfully. "Tell me you already have the evening robes we talked
about."
Madam Malkin winked happily and nodded. "Yes, this way," she said, leading Lily and Harry
to a private room.
"I can't believe he is not ashamed to show his face here," someone sneered. "He is trying to
sleep with the entire wizarding Britain."
Harry raised an eyebrow but didn't stop in his tracks. His mum did. She turned around
abruptly and stared at the girl with a vicious look in her eyes, the kinds of which Harry had
never seen before.
"Ms Greengrass," she smiled. "Sorry, didn't notice you in that... outfit you were wearing."
Daphne nodded awkwardly, and Lily gave her a big smile. Greengrass was probably speaking
about Harry earlier. It looked like his past self was quite popular in the love department. He
gave the Greengrass girl a small hand wave in greeting and followed his mother and Madam
Malkin.
Harry wasn't sure how long they spent at the shop, but it felt like hours. His mother looked
amazing in all the dresses she tried on, and he just couldn't help but beam with happiness at
the way she happily moved about in a new outfit and asked what he thought of it.
"They all look amazing, Mum," he told her each time with genuine admiration in his voice.
Madam Malkin dressed him in a number of robes, adjusting them and making sure they were
gripping "in all the right places". Harry stood there patiently like a marionette attached to a
string and allowed the woman to craft and measure a gorgeous outfit for him. The silk and
the wool and the gentle embellishments all looked very tasteful and subtle.
Harry stared at himself in the mirror and thought with amusement that he looked like a total
catch.
"You look so handsome," his mother told him. "I told you this was going to be fun."
Harry smiled at her. It was fun to be with her, but this was exhausting. He probably wouldn't
want to do this again. Madam Malkin was wrapping several pieces of dresses and several
pairs of suits.
"Paula," his mum smiled coyly with a small blush on her face. "Do you have what I
requested?"
Madam Malkin looked at her and then looked at Harry with a meaningful glint in her eyes
and nodded. "Yes, and it is fire," she said excitedly. "Someone's going to forget about
Wizengamot tonight."
Harry looked around dumbly and excused himself. He didn't want to be there when the
women were acting secretive and coquettish. The implications hanging in the air were
thickening the atmosphere to the point where Harry thought he would just choke if he heard
more.
People in the main shop were still giving him shy glances, so Harry decided to busy himself
by going through the containers of various enchanted accessories.
Harry turned around and stared at Narcissa Malfoy. She had her signature hairdo and was
dressed in a beautiful dark green dress which Harry started paying attention to after spending
hours having his mother and Madam Malkin discuss the colour and texture of different
fabrics.
"So glad to see you, sweetheart," she told him, pulling him into her arms. "Are you feeling
okay? You seemed a little tipsy yesterday."
Harry went completely limp in her arms, wondering if Narcissa Malfoy had an ulterior
motive for cradling him into her arms. Was their relationship different in this universe? She
was a Black, after all. Maybe they had a different relationship. Although it was hard to
believe, Harry knew he couldn't make assumptions. He needed to act very carefully and make
sure he didn't do anything to make his situation worse.
"I am feeling better," he said politely, hoping she would say something else to give him an
idea of what their relationship was like. He was treading carefully.
"I am glad to hear it," she said sweetly. "I was worried."
She looked around and leaned in closer. "Are you here with your mother or...?"
Harry wasn't sure who else he could be here with, but he simply nodded. "She is picking the
purchase."
Narcissa looked relieved, which surprised Harry. He watched her carefully, trying to detect
signs of malice or anything suspicious, but it appeared quite hard to read her facial
expressions.
"See you tonight," she leaned in for a hug and Harry half-heartedly wrapped his hands around
her.
"Mother," Harry knew that voice and that irritatingly sneering tone. Of course, how could he
ever not recognise Draco Malfoy's annoying voice? Narcissa let go of him and turned around
to look at her son. "What's taking you so long? Oh, Potter?"
"Sorry, Draco! I know you are busy. I will go get the robes. Lily is here as well, so I might be
a little late, catching up with her." She said apologetically.
Draco Malfoy looked almost annoyed, and Harry expected him to throw a tantrum, but he
pursed his lips and nodded with a sigh. Narcissa seemed satisfied, so she turned to Harry,
gave him a tiny pat on the shoulder and walked towards the private room where his mother
and Madam Malkin were sorting out the purchase.
He stood there awkwardly, staring down at the accessories, while his school nemesis stared at
him unashamedly. Harry decided to play it cool and keep to himself.
"So," Draco cleared his throat, leaning closer. "I take it someone else is going to die today
since you managed to stay alive after what you did yesterday."
Harry raised an eyebrow and glared at Malfoy, unimpressed. Well, at least some things didn't
change.
"Riddle must be seething," he grinned like an idiot. "Theo's so dead. After all, no one can
touch you. Not even Riddle. Your daddy will put them down like stray dogs if they did."
Harry bristled at that and almost lost his temper over the mocking tone Malfoy used to talk
down to him. Even in a universe where their mothers were on speaking terms, the blonde
needed to be a prick.
"Precious Harry," he laughed. "Everyone's doting on you, but you are a total bitch. A really
hot, nasty bitch."
He whispered the last words, and Harry almost fell down on the ground. What the hell was
wrong with Malfoy? He looked proud of himself which told Harry that he said what he said
to get a reaction out of him, and he succeeded.
"Seriously," he unceremoniously brushed Harry's hair behind his ear and did it like it was a
normal thing to do. "Why would you let Nott grope you? Are you trying to get yourself killed
or something? You do know that Riddle's a psycho. My father and yours might be too
charmed by his charisma, but you know very well that your husband is dangerous. He
certainly didn't marry you for your pretty face, even though, that must be a bonus."
Harry scanned Malfoy's body movement, trying to discern his intentions. It seemed he wasn't
really teasing him anymore and expressed a level of genuine concern.
"Oh come on," Malfoy raised his hand indignantly, like he was offended Harry dismissed
him. "I am worried about you. The media can't shut up about your scandals. It's something
new every day. And if Riddle and your father are fine with you being a total bitch to some
run-of-the-mill witch or wizard, or wear an exceptionally outrageous outfit from time to time,
they are not going to be happy to have their name associated with you sleeping around with
random people."
What was it with people assuming Harry was some kind of whore?
"Who have I slept with?" he demanded, already fed up with the bullshit.
Malfoy stared at him for a short moment and then his eyes darkened in some kind of
thoughtful realisation. "Are you telling me that Nott was feeling you up without your
consent?"
This was not a conversation he wanted to have with Draco Malfoy. "How would I know? I
was drunk," he reckoned.
Only he didn't expect his words to cause Malfoy's total outburst. He looked like he could kill
someone. This was concerning. "That bastard," he said, clutching Harry like he was some
kind of proverbial pearl. "So, he took advantage of your drunken state and decided to paw
you? The wanker's nerve!"
Harry strained to free himself from Malfoy's arms. This was getting ridiculous.
"You are so dumb," he scolded Harry like the latter was a child. "How could you get so
drunk?"
Harry slowly was getting the impression that he was treated like some fragile princess. Even
Malfoy acted like he was Harry's knight in shining armour. This wasn't the Middle Ages. He
couldn't figure out what was wrong with the overall vibe.
"Don't worry," he told Harry. "I'll take care of this. Nott certainly will not let his hands loose
again."
"Oh Draco," it was his mother's voice. Lily looked delighted to see the blonde wanker, as she
rushed to hug him like he was a second son or something. "How are you doing? How is your
Ministry work going? James is very impressed and speaks very fondly of you all the time. I
wish you could visit us more often."
If Harry wasn't already surprised, his mouth would have dropped on the ground. Yes, this was
a different universe. A very different one.
"The work at the Ministry is fine," he said. "Nothing exciting. I am glad Uncle James is
happy with me."
Uncle James? Now Harry had to really open his mouth in surprise and gasp for air.
"Hopefully, we will see you tonight at the dinner, right?" she smiled sweetly.
"I wouldn't dream of missing it," Malfoy smiled back charmingly, annoying Harry that he
was so chummy with his mother.
"Draco," Narcissa spoke, coming closer and clutching Draco's arm. "You are the head of the
Department of Magical Law Enforcement. All the offices answer to you, could you perhaps
do something about the Rita Skeeter situation? She is slandering Harry."
Harry was awfully surprised that Draco was the head of the whole department, not even the
head of the office within the department, but the whole department. Draco was smart and
studied hard in his version of reality, but he was a coward, and Harry was having a hard time
imagining that Draco had managed to land such a high and coveted position at the age of 21.
And yes, Harry was getting the impression that everyone was trying to protect him for some
reason like he was a delicate flower. Even Narcissa Malfoy, probably after speaking with his
mum, was upset that Rita Skeeter was publishing articles about Harry.
Draco's facial expression tightened. It looked like he was irked. He gave his mother a tight
smile.
"I know that she is lying about Harry," he said, looking at Harry with an expression that had a
teasing glint. "But I can't misuse the authority of my position to intervene. I would advise
though for Harry to file a formal complaint against the Daily Prophet."
"Cissy," Lily clapped. "You can't ask such a thing. Draco can't jeopardise his professional
integrity and involve himself in Skeeter's gossip. I am going to personally rip that witch's hair
out if she continues slinging mud at my son."
"But it doesn't mean Rita Skeeter can't be investigated for the misuse of specific potions and
substances," Draco smirked, watching the women and giving Harry a meaningful glance.
"Thank you, Draco," Lily smiled. "I don't want to keep you here any longer. I know you are a
busy man. Cissy told me you took time from your schedule to accompany her, which is so
sweet."
"He is such a gentleman," Narcissa gushed. Harry wanted to vomit. "We will see you at
dinner. Harry, sweetheart, as always you look stunning."
Yep! This world was the worst kind of screwed up. Draco Malfoy was a gentleman, and
Harry was stunning. Like he cared about being stunning. Clearly, his life in this reality
revolved around his looks and making dumb decisions while everyone else had normal
accomplishments.
He smiled politely but wasn't sure he could hide the half-heartedness of his smile. Draco
grinned at him and pulled him into a hug all of a sudden. Harry almost kicked him in the balls
out of the habit of wanting to kick Malfoy's arse.
Draco pulled back, and the grin on his lips widened. "Try to stay out of trouble."
For a moment, he wished he had his wand so he could wipe that self-important grin off of
Malfoy's face. It could wait, though. He had more pressing things to worry about. Things like
what the hell he was going to do. Could he really continue living like this Harry? Someone
killed this version of him, and they probably would try again. Was it Riddle?
"Let's go, sweetheart," his mum pulled him out of his contemplation.
He followed her wordlessly, leaning closer to her. Maybe he could get used to this world.
Maybe he should get used to this world. His mum was here. She was alive. She looked happy.
No one was dead. Tom Riddle was just Tom Riddle. His friends were probably alive. Things
were quite good. If trouble was looming around, Harry would fend it off. He knew how to
handle himself, and he could handle anything and everything.
"I also got what we talked about earlier. Paula had kept the piece only for you, my darling,"
Lily said excitedly, and Harry beamed at her. It was strange to be much taller than her. He
never had the privilege to grow up around her and see how he grew taller than her, and now
the observation made his heart grow full both with sadness and happiness. "Tom's going to
lose his mind."
Tom was Voldemort, Harry was pretty sure, he had already lost his mind.
Lily gripped his arm, and they apparated. They landed outside the grounds of the house.
Harry stared at the large, imposing manor. The place was bigger than the Malfoy one.
"The house is quite big, isn't it?" he said awkwardly as they walked through the gates.
"Is it?" she asked with a smile. "You must be feeling lonely. Tom is working all the time, and
there is no one else at home. Maybe it's time to think about children."
Yeah! Fat chance! If they adopted a child, Riddle would probably murder the baby for some
twisted magic ritual.
"Don't be stubborn about it," Lily continued. "What's the point of having lurne blood if you
are not going to use the perks coming from it?"
Harry nodded with a thin smile. He had no idea what lurne was, and what were its perks. He
needed to hit the library and do research. He couldn't just ask his mum.
"Hmm," she pursed her lips thoughtfully. "I trust your father's judgement."
Harry sighed internally. He really wanted to know what his mother thought so he could
somehow discern if anything creepy or murderous was happening around Riddle.
"I suppose he is very nice," she said as they walked into the manor. "Tom is very polite and
charming. He is hardworking, and he fought hard to marry you."
She gave him a delighted smile, not realising the horrified expression painted on Harry's face.
"What do you mean he fought hard to marry me?"
"You know what I mean," she giggled happily, dropping bags of clothes on the large leather
sofa. "Tom was very ardent in convincing your father. James called him the most ambitious
man ever."
You bet! He was a power-hungry psychopath. The question was, what did he want with
Harry?
"Things will get better," Lily told him tenderly as if thinking Harry's questions expressed his
uncertainty in the relationship with his husband.
She didn't know of the storm of emotions running wild in his heart. He didn't want her to
know... to worry. Harry tried to memorise his mother's embrace.
"I will see you in the evening, okay?" she placed a tender kiss on his forehead and got up.
Harry didn't want to let her go. If he could just crawl into her embrace and stay there
comfortably, he probably would. It was such a childish desire, but he craved his mother's
presence, affection and love. Lily used the Floo Network to go back home, and Harry stood
in front of the fireplace to see her off.
After she left, Harry felt very alone in the enormous room, surrounded with bags and boxes
of newly purchased clothes.
The elf appeared in the room immediately. "How can I help you, Master Harry?"
"Could you perhaps help me get dressed for the evening dinner, Dobby?" he asked,
awkwardly gesturing towards the clothes on the sofa.
Dobby nodded. He immediately grabbed everything and vanished with them, taking them to
Harry's room. Once Harry got there, he found the elf was already waiting for him with the
outfits properly arranged.
Well, he just needed to play along long enough to get the gist of things, and then he could
come up with some exit plan. He definitely wasn't going to stay married to Riddle. That was
a step too far into nonsense.
Dobby helped him dress into the outfit his mother had picked for him and styled his hair. He
had no idea what spells those were, but his hair never looked this tame and soft. He
remembered how crazy it was to deal with his hair and how Ron joked that the three of them
had some interesting hair problems.
He could see from the window that it was already late. The evening was setting, and the sky
was darkening.
"Master looks so pretty," Dobby said, adding a small brooch to the blouse he was wearing.
Harry looked at Dobby thoughtfully. "Would you want me to gift you clothes?"
Dobby stared at Harry and then his expression turned into utter horror, and he started hitting
his head against the vanity table. "Dobby wouldn't dare, Dobby wouldn't dare..."
Harry rushed to stop the elf. "Dobby," he said gently, holding the elf's hands, "you don't need
to worry about it. When you feel ready, tell me. You can always stay here."
That seemed to calm the elf, but he looked at Harry with confusion. Harry decided not to
press further. This was a different timeline. Things were set differently.
There was a very short knock, and then the door was pushed open. Harry turned his head
towards the door, heart beating faster, as he was trying to determine whether wandless magic
would be enough to defend himself against whoever this was. His body was in defensive
mode after months of running and hiding and looking for Horcruxes.
It was hard to control his instincts of wanting to go into a defensive mode at the sight of
Riddle. Despite looking youthful and very handsome, the way his cold eyes measured Harry
dangerously, made him a threat in Harry's mind. Riddle didn't have his wand in his hand and
walked towards Harry with an expression on his face that could have been best described as
annoyance and irritation.
"Well, there is at least one thing you are good at," he said with contempt, scrutinising Harry
with an appraising eye.
"What's that supposed to mean?" Harry retorted before he could think better of it. Something
about the way Riddle looked him up and down, made him indignant. He felt naked under his
gaze.
Riddle didn't deign him with an answer, instead, he strode across the room towards Harry,
and to Harry's horror, laid his hands around him and tugged him up into his arms.
"You will behave tonight," he whispered into his ear in a sweet tone. Harry felt the heat of
Riddle's body surround him at once, this closeness making him dizzy and lax. "Because if
you don't, there will be consequences."
Harry felt like prey in a predator snake's arms that was constricting around him and had
paralysed him with its neurotoxic venom, making his muscles lax and his breathing shallow.
It was disturbing how much Riddle could influence his mind and incite such strange physio-
psychological response. And the worrying part was that there was no magic involved,
influencing him and making susceptible to Riddle's charm.
"And if I don't, what are you gonna do? Kill me?" Harry knew he should have controlled his
mouth, but Riddle's patronising tone raised his hackles, and he couldn't stop himself.
Riddle's arms tightened around him as if in warning, but then he cocked his head slightly to
the side and looked at Harry with an amused expression on his face.
"You do have quite the imagination," he said mockingly. "Kill you, huh? And here I thought
you couldn't be more dramatic."
Harry shoved him, irritated. Did Riddle think he could gaslight him?
"Sod off," Harry grumbled, not being able to get rid of the vice grip of Riddle's embrace.
This seemed to anger Riddle, because he twirled Harry around and pushed him against the
wall, knocking expensive vials of beauty potions on the floor and shattering them into pieces.
He leaned in closer, so close that Harry felt Riddle's body warmth on his back, and it felt
oddly intimate.
"I told you to behave," he reminded Harry in his low, assertive tone. "That includes the way
you talk to me. If you continue behaving like a child, I am going to treat you like one and
ground you at home. No more meetings with your air-headed friends. Do you understand
me?"
Harry was quickly getting fed up with the way he was being treated. Did the wizarding
customs suddenly change? Riddle and everyone else was treating him like he was not a
grown man, but a blushing maiden married in the 50s and expected to be obedient to her
husband and all nine yards. Just what the fuck?!
He wouldn't put up with this bullshit if he was a goddamn housewife in the 50s. No way he
was going to put up with any of this nonsense as a literal soldier fighting in the wizarding
war. He wanted to lash out at Riddle and tell him off. But what good would that do for him?
Riddle probably thought he was just a dumb socialite, spending his time shopping and
cheating on him. Even if he wasn't Tom Riddle, the psycho, who murdered children and was
a blood supremacist, he would still be understandably upset about the whole previous Harry
behaviour.
"Look," Harry tried to speak calmly. "Can you just do your thing and I do my thing? We don't
need to see each other or anything. You probably could do better than spend any time with
me."
Riddle didn't take his words kindly at all, as he moved Harry backwards and turned him
around, so now that they were facing each other. Riddle apparently liked to manhandle Harry.
His every move was calculated and clearly taken to cement his authority and control.
He looked at Harry for a second and then sighed. "You are grounded. I will have Barty watch
you from now on. Clearly, you still don't understand your role and responsibilities. Maybe it
is my fault for letting you act out the way you did all this time. I have tried to be patient with
you. You are an adult, but that seems to escape your understanding. What you did yesterday
has caused me so many issues at the Ministry. You are damaging my reputation and tainting
the legacy of your father."
Harry stared at Riddle, dumbfounded. He couldn't ground Harry, could he? Of course, he
could. Riddle was the Minister for Magic and Harry was his childish, dumb husband. Even
his mum would not think this was crossing a line. Harry seethed internally. He needed to be
smart about this.
"I am," Riddle informed him, grabbing Harry's wrist all of a sudden and dragging him out of
the bedroom. "Be at your best behaviour today. This is a very important dinner. Your father
and I are meeting important people for the ministry project. And while you do not care,
hundreds of magical children need this project to be approved, and we need the support of
these people."
Harry now understood how Voldemort got to power. The way he manipulated and charmed
must have been this strong, because if Harry knew nothing, he would be convinced that
Riddle cared about the well being of magical children.
This made Harry stop fighting Riddle. He wasn't sure where Riddle was dragging him
initially, but now that he knew he was going to his parents' house he was happy. He wanted to
see his father. This made him momentarily forget about the menace that was dragging him
towards the fireplace.
Harry unknowingly had clung to Riddle while travelling via the Floo Network. Riddle didn't
seem to notice or care. He simply pulled Harry into what appeared to be a very beautiful
withdrawing room furnished elegantly and displaying various magical artefacts and
heirlooms. Harry looked around confused, but then his demeanour brightened when he saw
his mother's face.
"You look absolutely gorgeous, sweetheart," she said, walking up to them and giving Harry a
kiss on the cheek. "Tom, so nice to see you."
"Thank you for having me, Lady Potter," he said politely, kissing his mother's hand.
"Tom, I told you to call me Lily," she patted on his arm playfully with a delighted giggle.
"You are too formal. We are family."
Harry had to use the physical force of digging his nails into his own palms not to step
between Riddle and his mum.
Tom smiled politely at her, nodding wordlessly. This was uncomfortable to watch. Harry
sighed internally but tried not to show any visible disdain for Riddle. There was no point to
do that right now, considering that he knew very little about Riddle's influence over his own
parents and how it could potentially damage things for him more than help.
"He is in the ballroom," Lily told him. "All the guests are there already. Let's go."
Riddle grabbed his arm and clenched in a stern warning. "Behave," he mumbled.
Harry glared at him when Riddle's gaze shifted towards the corridor where Lily Potter was
leading them. He rolled his eyes exasperated and annoyed that he didn't have his wand and
had to go along with all this nonsense.
When they walked in, they were greeted with beautiful music and buzzing conversations. The
ballroom was enormous, and this was definitely no family dinner since the huge room was
crowded. Harry's eyes scanned the room, and he realised with horror that this resembled more
a Death Eater gathering rather than a Potter family dinner.
Harry's hands shook as Corban Yaxley greeted Riddle and hurried to grab Harry's hand and,
for some deranged reason, planted a kiss on it. Harry noticed Riddle stiffen next to him as he
gave the man a curt nod of greeting.
"Minister," Yaxley turned to Riddle. "Very glad to see you and your lovely husband."
He stared at Harry with a strange look, and Harry fought the urge not to smack Yaxley. Why
in the bloody hell was this geezer staring at him lustfully? This was getting way too
uncomfortable. Riddle wrapped his arm around Harry's shoulder to Harry's surprise and
pulled him closer.
James Potter looked happy and alive and much older than Harry remembered him from the
photos. Harry was so happy, he couldn't even move. It was as if everything had stopped
around him. He had imagined countless times, having his father alive and spending time with
him. This moment was so dreamlike that he didn't even notice that Yaxley moved away
towards a group of wizards having a drink and chatting.
"My beautiful boy," his father pulled him into a hug that almost lifted Harry off his feet. "You
always look like an angel even when you act like a little devil."
"Dad," he cried, wrapping his hands around his father. "I have missed you so much."
James seemed to be a little surprised and looked at him bewildered, but then his expression
turned into a knowing smirk. "Harry," he chastised. "Are you trying to get out of trouble?
Don't worry, I will take care of everything."
What? No! Harry looked at his dad confused, but the man was already looking at Tom.
"How is the project going, Tom?" he asked as he shook hands with Riddle.
"I have everything running smoothly, Lord Potter," Tom told him with a slight nod. "It looks
like Yaxley is still having some reservations though, but I will-"
"Don't worry about Yaxley," his father interrupted Riddle. "I will make sure that Yaxley
knows his place and doesn't create problems for you. He should know better than try to muck
about. I don't pay him to run his mouth. The critter will learn to show you the respect that you
deserve one way or another. I've told you, Tom, I think of you as my son."
Harry's mouth dropped open, and he nearly blanked out, processing the whole exchange.
Riddle didn't kill his father for interrupting him and seemed to show a level of respect that
was hard for Harry to comprehend. And what the hell his father just said?
"We need to talk though," his father said with a slight sigh. "In my office."
That seemed like he was going to scold Tom or something. If Harry didn't know any better,
he would think he was having a out of body experience.
"Of course," Tom nodded, and turning to Harry, warned him in a low murmur. "Try not to
create problems for me."
He walked away with James as Harry stared at their retreating backs. Great! Harry was
surrounded by a bunch of people he didn't know in a world he wasn't familiar with feeling
like a real imposter. He looked around irritated, trying to find his mum. At least, she believed
that Harry loved him. It felt like his dad didn't care about him and thought of him as a silly
child.
"Harry, my darling," a woman hugged him suddenly, and Harry let it happen as he didn't even
have time to take a good look at her. "You have grown so beautifully. You have my
grandmother's looks. I am glad you inherited our side of looks instead of your father's."
"Rose," a man reprimanded her. "He looks like his father too."
Harry looked at the old witch and the wizard. They wore expensive robes and looked like a
bunch of purebloods that he had never seen before. He wondered who they were, and why
this old woman was saying Harry looked like her grandmother.
"Mum, Dad?" Lily clapped as she walked up to them. "James didn't tell me that you would
come today."
The witch hugged Lily and kissed her on the cheeks. "Oh, Lily," she said with a smile. "We
weren't sure we would be able to come. Your father finally decided to let the hired witches
and wizards handle the work at the company. He is such a grump when it comes to the whole
potions work."
"Rose," the man chastised her again, but it didn't seem she cared about it.
They were his grandparents. Harry had never seen them. They were already long gone when
he was a kid, and Aunt Petunia never kept pictures of them since she resented them for
supposedly loving Lily more. They were Muggles, so it seemed strange that they were
dressed like wizards and talked about a potions company.
"No, baby," the man said. "We will leave after the dinner. I have some appointments with the
Minister of Magic affairs. You know I am busy and we would love to stay in Britain, but my
schedule is stacked. We have to go home, back to France."
"Harry?" his mother gave him a look. "Did you already drink? Didn't I tell you to be
careful?"
"That was a joke," Harry hurried to say. "A bad one. You know I always wondered what if
my grandparents were Muggles and all."
"So what about Aunt Petunia?" Harry wondered. It would have been scary to imagine his
aunt being a witch.
"Petunia?"
"Okay, that's not funny," Lily shook her head. "You should stop being silly. You know I am
an only child."
"I am so sorry, Mum," Harry looked at the strangers. "Grandma, Grandpa, I will go and get
something to eat."
They nodded confused with Harry's behaviour, and Harry used the opportunity to flee. His
grandparents were magical, and he didn't have an aunt. It was strange. And these people
seemed very rich. Slowly, Harry was realising why his other self was a spoiled, childish man.
He probably thought that he was some kind of pureblood prince with some extra special
magical blood that made him look stunning, and it might have gotten to his other version's
head.
No wonder Riddle married him. It seemed he was very connected and influential. He walked
forward, not paying attention to anyone and somehow ended up in an empty hall. He could
hear his father's voice. He was talking with Riddle. Harry walked towards the door. It was
almost closed, except the tiny distance that was still there, allowing him to listen to their
conversation.
Please let me know what you think of this chapter? And what are you looking forward
most in the future? Do you like this type of relationship dynamics between Draco and
Harry? What do you think of this Tom Riddle?
Chapter 3
Chapter Notes
I was searching Tomarry related content and kept getting wedding/marriage forums and
🤣
discussion. You know that game "to marry or not to marry". This ship's response to that
is always "to marry." They are destined to marry.
"You should control the media better," James said. "That article about Harry was
unacceptable."
"I have already taken care of it," Riddle hurried to assure, but didn't move from the spot
where he was standing. His posture was somewhat stiff. It was strange watching his father
and young Voldemort converse as if they were father and son-in-law.
"Tom," James sighed. "Do you know why, out of all the people trying to marry my son, I
chose you?"
Riddle didn't blink or move; he remained still as Harry's dad moved towards the large
cabinets and pulled out a bottle of firewhisky and two crystal glasses.
"I chose you," he said, approaching Riddle slowly, "because I thought you could handle this.
You could handle my son."
"I—" Riddle tried to speak, but James waved his hand dismissively.
"Don't get me wrong," he said, placing the glasses on his desk. "Merlin knows, I love my son.
I was not exactly happy about his lurne blood as a lot of people might have thought I would
be. Initially. You know what that magical blood entails and means... But then I realised that
no matter what happens, now I can always choose the person whom I want to be my son by
having them marry my blood and flesh. I can choose who inherits everything."
Riddle was listening without making any body movements. It was very hard to read him, as
his face was impassive, hiding his emotions expertly. There was a strange smile on James
Potter's face. Harry felt sick, realising that his own father didn't care about him and thought
of him as a convenient pawn to get what he wanted.
"Harry is very beautiful," James continued, watching Riddle with amusement. "So why do
you think I wanted my pureblood son with a rare magical heritage to marry you, a wizard
with no family or name? Even your Muggle parents abandoned you."
Harry clenched his fists. This was not what he expected. He was feeling sick. He was feeling
betrayed.
"It's because," he opened the whisky bottle and started pouring into the glasses. "You, Tom,
impressed me, and I thought you could handle this. You could handle everything. You see,
this firewhisky is an Eldar barral dragonwhisky, made by Godric Gryffindor himself. One
bottle of this is 10,000 Galleons. It's more expensive than what your secretary makes in a
whole year, probably."
He extended the glass towards Tom. "I only have the best," he said with a smirk. "You were
the best when you came here and asked me for my son's hand in marriage. I believed in you.
You became the youngest Minister for Magic, so Tom, always remember, do not disappoint
me and make sure you are always the best."
"I will not disappoint you, Sir," finally Riddle spoke, accepting the glass. "None of this will
happen again."
"There will be some measures taken to ensure that everything stays in its place," he assured,
sipping the drink.
"You should always control the media," James sighed, leaning back in his chair. "They should
never publish anything without your knowledge, and the way you do it, you have your people
start working at the Daily Prophet. You pay whoever can be bought, and you threaten
whoever cannot."
This was quite disgusting, and Harry wasn't sure he could continue standing there and
eavesdropping.
"As for Harry," his father said, "I think that boy has too much free time. I know it has been
just eight months since you have been married, but maybe it is time to think about children.
Maybe then he will mature a little."
At the mention of children, something strange, something akin to disgust passed through
Riddle's face that he couldn't hide. It didn't seem his father caught it, but Harry knew. Tom
Riddle hated children.
"Perfect," James poured more firewhisky. "Now we need to discuss the project about the
magical children..."
Harry walked away. He couldn't breathe. He couldn't take in another word. This was a
nightmare. He didn't want to stay here with all these strangers. He needed to find a way to get
back.
Harry shuffled down the corridor and opened the first door he came upon. Shutting the door
behind himself, he leaned against the wall and took a deep breath. He needed to be careful. If
he couldn't get his hands on his own wand, maybe he could buy a secondary wand from
Ollivander's wand shop in Diagon Alley. Riddle wouldn't even know.
He also needed to find some kind of safe space for himself. He could perhaps find a nice
small flat in Muggle London, rent it and ward the place and formulate a plan for the future.
Because this couldn't be his life if he had any say in it.
He was so deep in thought that he didn't even notice the door opening and someone walking
into the room.
"Waiting for me?" Harry twirled around in an instant and stared at Corban Yaxley's sleazy
face. What did this arsehole want?
"Shame your father didn't give you to me," he whispered, walking closer to Harry. "I wouldn't
be leaving you alone here all by yourself like Riddle does. Can't understand why your father
would choose that Mudblood over me."
He moved closer to Harry and suddenly wrapped his hands around him, pulling him tight
against him. Harry recoiled in disgust and tried to move him away.
"What the hell are you doing?" he yelled. "Let go of me before I hex you."
Harry kicked him with his knee, and Yaxley fell on the ground in pain.
"Next time, I will kill you, arsehole," Harry threatened before leaving the room and shutting
the door behind him. It looked like he couldn't catch a break. If he had his wand, he would
probably slice up Yaxley with Snape's curse.
He walked into the ballroom and went straight for the glass of alcohol passing by on the tray.
He wanted to get drunk. If he had to deal with another person, wand or no wand, there were
going to be dead bodies here.
"I leave you for a couple of minutes, and you start getting drunk," Riddle grabbed his hand
tightly and took hold of the glass in Harry's hand. "Behave."
Harry stared at young Voldemort. He wondered if he knew that he was the Slytherin's heir
and was pretending to be a Muggle-born or didn't know anything and thus turned out
somewhat normal. No way. He probably had an ulterior motive for hiding everything. It
seemed James Potter was going to leave everything to Riddle, as it appeared he didn't even
consider Harry to be anything but a spoiled 'princess'.
"Who the hell do you think you are to tell me what to do?" Harry bristled. Since he had
arrived, everyone and their mother kept pushing him around.
Riddle's eyes narrowed at him. He crouched down, lowering his head to come face to face
with Harry, and Harry realised just how tall Riddle was. He stared at Harry with an amused
expression, and his lips curled into a mocking smile.
Harry moved back. If there was evidence that Riddle knew who he really was, this was it. Of
course, the arrogant psychopath would have not believed that he was a simple Muggle-born
wizard. Riddle definitely knew about his Slytherin heritage. Harry wondered why it was a
secret, though.
"Do what you are good at," he advised, wrapping his arm around Harry's waist and pulling
him closer. "Shut your mouth and look pretty."
Harry rolled his eyes and gritted his teeth. The music continued playing, and some of the
guests danced, while others drank, chatted and ate. It was a beautiful party, if anything,
except Harry didn't enjoy it since Riddle didn't leave his side even for a moment. He kept his
hand wrapped around Harry and didn't let go even when shaking hands with guests and
holding a brief conversation.
Everyone sucked up to Riddle and despite this, this new and improved version of the Dark
Lord kept smiling at them, charming them, but Harry could tell that with every friendly
compliment or question, Riddle deep down hated all of these people. There was a well-
concealed disdain hiding beneath layers of carefully crafted demeanour and polite
countenance.
These people either ignored Harry or complimented his beauty. Some of them slobbered over
him with downright disgusting lust. To Harry's surprise though, Riddle was snappy with these
particular people. He didn't care about Harry, but it must have felt like a jab against him if
others showed unwanted interest towards his supposed husband, and he let it slide. That
would have been interpreted as a sign of weakness, and Riddle hated being perceived as
weak.
At some point during the evening, Harry stopped listening. He was tired. He had been killed,
woken up in the body of another version of himself, and found he was married to Tom
Riddle, the man who tried to kill him since he was an infant and eventually succeeded. Then
he had spent the rest of his day shopping and hanging on Tom Riddle's arm at this ridiculous
party. He had been on his feet the whole day, and the bottom of his feet were killing him. He
couldn't stand it anymore.
"How long is this going to go on?" he begrudgingly whispered in Riddle's ear. "I am tired."
Riddle looked at him with contempt. He exhaled irritated but pulled Harry towards the large
balcony where flowers were hanging from all sides and gentle candlelight was illuminating
the view. The balcony looked towards a beautiful garden with luminescent flowers and dark
imposing trees. There were plush, soft sofas on the balcony. Riddle simply sat down, tugging
Harry down with him.
"I am sorry," he said, not sounding sorry at all. "I forgot that you are too delicate to stand on
your feet for a couple of hours."
Harry glared at Riddle, and Riddle had the audacity to laugh. He pulled his wand and directed
it at Harry. Harry froze. Riddle mumbled something inaudible. The blue light tinged with
magic left his wand and surrounded Harry's feet. The pain and soreness he was feeling
vanished instantaneously. Harry didn't recognise the spell, but he wasn't about to complain
about the lack of pain.
Harry nodded. "Good," Riddle sighed. "Don't want to have you whining the whole night
about sore feet. You can stay here. I need to see Yaxley."
Harry's mood had improved after Riddle's spell sucked out his pain, but the condescending
tone directed at Harry soured it again.
"Yaxley, huh?" Harry said with malice he didn't know he had. "You must be thrilled to see
Yaxley. But no matter what you do and what you achieve, he thinks you are a Mudblood."
A wave of anger passed through Riddle's features. It looked like Harry really had hit a nerve.
Then his eyes caught Yaxley standing by his father and talking with him while having his
hand pressed slightly towards his groin. Harry smirked. The bastard must have been still
hurting where Harry had hit him.
"Oh," he smiled at Riddle. "Maybe you can use that spell on Yaxley and take away his pain.
The poor thing must still be in pain since I kneed him in the groin for laying his hands on me.
I must have done some damage. I think he could use your help. You like helping people, don't
you?"
Riddle's hands were curled into a fist. Harry was sure he was mad Harry mocked him. But
instead of saying anything to Harry, Riddle got up, took out his wand and strode towards
Yaxley. Harry stared bewildered, wondering what was Riddle's deal. Was he pretending not to
care about Harry's taunting?
He watched Riddle grab Yaxley by the back of his neck and yank him away towards the exit.
James waved his hand angrily and called after Riddle, but Riddle didn't stop or turn back, he
simply dragged Yaxley out of the ballroom while Yaxley struggled to free himself. His father
followed right after them. It seemed he was angry at Riddle for rudely interrupting his
conversation. None of the other guests noticed or cared to pay attention to them. Everyone
was slightly drunk or having too much fun.
Harry rushed towards them. He had no idea what was going on. Riddle opened one of the
doors and pushed Yaxley in. The man fell on the floor.
"What the fuck are you doing, Riddle?" he yelled, trying to get up.
"Crucio," Riddle cast the spell, and Yaxley screamed and convulsed on the floor.
His father looked horrified. Harry could tell that he didn't know Riddle was capable of such
action. He cast an Unforgivable Curse. Riddle was the Minister.
"Yaxley," Riddle ignored James and started moving around Yaxley. "I allowed you to play
games. I allowed your disrespect. I was hoping you would come to your senses and know
your place. But you decide to take one step further and lay your hands on my husband?"
Harry's heartbeat grew faster. Did Riddle get mad about what Harry said? He probably was
angry because Yaxley insulted him and dared to touch Riddle's conquest since he didn't care
about Harry any further than what Harry represented. Harry was Riddle's conquest.
"What does that mean?" James came forward, pulling his wand.
"Why don't you tell us, Yaxley?" Riddle mocked, moving his wand around, and Harry
suspected he was twisting Yaxley's arms around. "I should break all of your fingers."
"You cornered my son and tried to touch him?" James asked in a low voice, clearly
wandering through Yaxley's mind too. Yaxley must not have been very good at Occlumency.
James hunched over Yaxley's body and pressed his wand against Yaxley's throat. "I pay you,
Yaxley," he said. "You think you have any right to touch my son?"
Harry heard crunches. James twisted Yaxley's arm around and the bone cracked. Harry felt
bile rising in his throat. His father and husband were both fucking crazy.
"If I see you breathing the wrong way near Harry," Riddle warned, lowering his wand and
letting Yaxley wail a sob of relief. "I will bury you."
"Winky," James Potter called in a gruff tone, and the house-elf appeared. "Escort this lowlife
out of my house."
The elf nodded and disappeared, grabbing Corban Yaxley with him. Tom stared at the empty
spot on the marble floor where Yaxley had been lying seconds ago, thrashing and twisting in
pain. He gripped his wand tighter and gritted his teeth.
"I thought you had lost your mind," James laughed, patting him on the arm. "This is what I
meant when I said I thought you could handle everything."
Tom nodded. He knew. James Potter would have thought him weak if he hadn't tortured
Yaxley right then and there for defying him. Yaxley's transgression had been against Potter's
spoiled, coddled son and despite how Potter spoke of his son, he wouldn't have accepted
anything less than what Tom did to Yaxley as punishment. Tom knew this well. He knew this
when he married the Potter family's waited-on-hand-and-foot pureblood heir.
Harry Potter was a pampered, selfish diva, who had been doted on by his parents and
wrapped in cotton wool like a little fragile porcelain doll. Tom had never thought the little
bitch would have been such a nuisance. He knew the guy was an airhead, barely graduating
from Hogwarts, and that's only due to James Potter's very generous contributions to the
school. But he had never expected the dumb brat to go around cheating on him and smearing
his name.
He had spent the morning threatening the Daily Prophet over the Nott article and having
Barty take care of the chief editor so the article would be retracted. Then he had to see Nott
and make sure the git knew what would be coming for him if he had the nerve to provoke
him again and so much as look the wrong way at Harry.
"How did you know though?" Potter Senior's voice brought him back to reality. "How did
you know that Yaxley was letting his hands loose?"
Tom blinked, not sure why he was being asked this. "Harry told me," he said impassively.
"Hmm," Potter nodded. "That's good. Make sure to keep that silly boy in check. No more of
these absurd articles about him appearing in the news. If you continue demonstrating your
determination like today, I will make sure you are calling the shots at the Council."
"I appreciate everything you are doing for me, Sir. I'll join the party. Harry must be alone."
Tom nodded politely and excused himself.
He walked out of the room and headed for the bathroom. Yaxley's pain-twisted face was still
in his mind. It was getting harder to keep his composure. He shut the door behind himself and
vomited. He wasn't sure if whatever he was doing for James Potter was worth the man's
support. But he was feeling sick. Yaxley was disgusting, no doubt, but he had used an
Unforgivable on him.
He washed himself, cold water dripping down his face as he stared at his own reflection. Is
this what he wanted for himself? He tried to belong with Muggles as a child and then with
wizards as a teenager, and now as a man, he was trying to fit into the pureblood society of
wizarding Britain. He didn't belong anywhere no matter what he did. He was the best student
at his Muggle orphanage school and the best student at Hogwarts. He became the Minister for
Magic and married Potter's coveted pureblood nightmare of a son. But after everything he
had done, he was still Tom Riddle, a person who did not belong.
He cast cleansing spells, fixed his hair and suit, took a deep breath and walked back to the
ballroom. He couldn't afford to look anything but perfectly in control of himself around these
people. His eyes scanned the room until his gaze landed on his husband. He was with Malfoy,
glaring at the blonde, somehow irritated. Harry Potter was beautiful. He looked ethereal like a
being from one's dreams. His lurne heritage made him so alluring that even Tom, hating the
little brat with every fibre of his being, couldn't deny his physical attraction towards him.
Tom still remembered seeing Harry Potter for the first time. He was in his last year of school
at Hogwarts, a Head Boy when Potter started his first year. After his first quidditch class, the
boy ran into him, crying when he was patrolling the halls, making sure none of the students
were getting in trouble. He remembered the little boy crying and demanding for Tom to help
him and stop the pain of his sore feet.
He had used the pain-draining spell back then too. Then he had forgotten about Potter. After
Hogwarts, he had other things to worry about, working at a shady Borgin and Burkes as an
assistant. It was later on when he had managed to move to the Ministry that he kept hearing
about Harry Potter. People liked to gossip about James and Lily Potters' airheaded pretty son.
He had climbed up the career ladder at the Ministry pretty quickly, working hard, creating
various connections. He hated that he was a nobody. People liked to remind him of this every
chance they got.
He had met Harry at a Ministry ball, and the two barely spoke, but Barty told him that he was
James Potter's son and everyone wanted him. He knew that he needed a powerful, pureblood
wizarding family connection to get on top and stay there. James Potter was influential and
powerful and his wife Lily Evans was the only daughter of the Evans family, a rich wizarding
family with ties to the French Ministry.
A year after becoming the Minister for Magic he had gone to see James Potter and ask for his
son's hand in marriage. He wasn't even sure what he expected, but Potter had treated him like
he was dirt under his nails or a pest that needed to be squashed. He still remembered the
conversation the two of them had and Potter asking him if he could be what it takes to marry
his son.
They married in September. It was the wedding of the century. No minister had ever wed
while in the office, since all of them were one foot in the grave and too old by the time they
reached the position of Minister for Magic. Everyone talked about the wedding. Foreign
ministers and media were present for the event.
Barely eight months into their marriage, and he was already regretting his decision. Harry
Potter was insufferable. The only times he acted pleasant and agreeable were when they slept
together, and that was only if he wanted something or had done something to piss him off or
his father. Potter heir treated everyone like rubbish and with the snootiness of a pureblood
socialite that Tom hated. The scandals were nonstop and the more he tried to stop them, the
more aggressive and uncontrollable the little bitch became.
Harry had intentionally spilled his drink on Tom's secretary, Hermione Granger and insulted
her on multiple occasions. Tom knew that Harry called him a Mudblood behind his back, but
did not have enough nerve to call him that to his face. After a couple of successful projects at
the Ministry, James Potter seemed more enthusiastic about him and he had spent frequent
nights attending various gatherings with his father-in-law who introduced him to well-known
and placed figures in the wizarding society.
He wanted Tom to take over after him. James Potter knew what his own son was and he had
chosen Tom because he was nobody, a smart, accomplished, nobody who had the magical
capacity of all of these pureblood idiots combined. Everyone knew this which was why
despite despising him none of them had the guts to openly oppose him. They did it only in
polite insults and snide remarks.
Tom knew that James would push for them to have a child. A child with his magic and born
with the most rare magical birth. Despite the airhead that Potter's son was and his
incompetence at basic magic, the capacity to create magical life was what made them so
fascinating. The dusty old books at Hogwarts swore magic came from a lurne. He didn't want
anything to do with Harry Potter and having any children with him was a sacrifice he hadn't
prepared himself to make.
"Tom," Malfoy noticed him staring and moved away from Harry. He extended his hand for a
handshake and walked up to him. "Was already thinking I wouldn't get to see you tonight."
He shook Malfoy's hand and gave him a tight-lipped smile. "I apologise," he said curtly.
"There were some things that needed to be discussed with James."
"Hey," Draco said, lowering his voice and directing a brief glance at Harry who seemed to
have developed a sudden appetite for strawberry soufflés. "I needed to talk to you about
Nott."
"What about Nott?" he knew that Malfoy was going to claim that his dear cousin had nothing
to do with Nott.
"I didn't want to do anything about it since I thought it's best if you knew, but he had dropped
some kind of strange draught in Harry's drink last night. I have checked the magical
recordings from the Ministry party, and he seemed to have given something to Harry."
Tom didn't care. Harry liked to get drunk and cheat around without any draughts or serums.
But Nott had already been dealt with. "I will take care of it," he said. "Send me the records."
He was tempted to act on his threats against Nott. It seemed Harry Potter brought out the
worst in everyone.
"Good," Malfoy nodded with a smile. The Malfoy heir was more tolerable than his father, but
he had a weird obsession with his cousin which Tom didn't understand.
Harry was staring at him. He could feel the man's insistent gaze transfixed on him. There
must have been something that he had done or wanted to do. Tom stared back. Harry shoved
another piece of soufflé into his mouth. The Potter heir was a picky eater and watched what
he ate to look the way he looked. It was strange how he was shoving those sweets into his
mouth and glaring at Tom.
"You'll make yourself sick," he sighed eventually annoyed and walked up to his husband. "I
don't understand what you are trying to accomplish."
"Well, I guess what I eat must be up to you too. Sorry, I should have asked your permission."
Harry rolled his eyes. "What do you want? Feeling better after torturing Yaxley? You must be
getting a real kick out—"
Tom grabbed his arm and pulled him away from the table. "Getting a real kick out of it?" he
laughed bitterly. "You must really enjoy pushing my buttons. That's fine. Just remember this,
no matter what you do, you are mine."
Harry's pretty face scrunched up in anger and he tried to pull his arm away. Tom smiled
amused, the souring mood of his husband providing him with much-needed vindication.
Harry was pissed at the prospect of being married to him and had told him so since the
beginning, reminding him that his father wanted this and there was nothing he could do was
what Tom should have done from the start.
"Figures you'd be a possessive psychopath," Harry muttered under his breath and turned his
head away in protest.
Harry rolled his eyes and turned away, staring at the people dancing in the ballroom.
Everyone seemed happy and right where they were supposed to be. He was the odd one here.
He caught the sight of his parents, talking to his grandparents, smiling, and drinking and his
heart ached because these people thought he was their child, but he was not. He was an
imposter. They were not his parents, they were simply a version of what his parents could be.
These thoughts brought him back to the reality that he was stuck in. He couldn't go back, and
he couldn't change the fact that his other version was dead. What he could do though was to
make sure that Tom Riddle didn't do anything nefarious. Harry was sure that he was plotting
something. He could find a way to get rid of Riddle. He wasn't just going to stay married to
the psychopath who locked his wand away for "Harry's own good." Where else did he hear
that?!
He fell silent and didn't even notice how the evening came to an end eventually, and the
guests slowly took their leave. His parents were politely seeing them off until everyone, even
his grandparents, left. The house was so quiet since only his parents, Tom fucking Riddle and
him were left there. There were two house-elves that Harry had never seen before, cleaning
the room, getting everything in order. Their magic was phenomenal. Harry always wondered
why elven magic wasn't studied better. Hermione would have something interesting to say
about that if she were around. He wondered if she was still alive in his version of the world.
He hoped they all were alive and well.
"It was exhausting," Harry admitted with a smile, allowing himself to fall into her arms.
"You'll feel better after you have some tea," his mother said soothingly, caressing his head.
"You will stay for tea, right, Tom?"
Harry moved his head from his mother's embrace to look at Riddle. "Of course," Riddle said
with a charming smile. "It'd be our pleasure."
"Then it's sorted," Lily said enthusiastically. "Let's go to the drawing room."
She didn't let go of Harry which Harry was grateful for. No, maybe this could work. Maybe
he just needed to shut up and let things be as they were. His dad seemed off, not what he
imagined, but his mum was exactly the bright ray of sunlight that he always thought she was.
He could stay here for her and be happy. He could watch Riddle and make sure the git didn't
do anything Voldy-like, but other than that he could get used to this. He was willing.
Soon they found themselves in the living room, seated on the soft sofas and sipping the most
delicious tea ever. Riddle was staring at him, watchful eyes scanning his every move. It was
as if he was expecting Harry to do something. Harry had no idea what Riddle expected from
the other version of himself, but his impression was that old version of Harry was a spoiled
airhead.
"We should be able to establish the magical childcare centres at that stage," Riddle said to
James. "We would need to start the new department within the Ministry to detect early magic,
so we can find and track the magical children and make sure they are raised in the right
environment."
Harry blinked. He wasn't sure he was understanding what Riddle was saying clearly. "We
should have done this centuries ago," James mused. "Squibs should register and their
bloodlines should be monitored too. We can perhaps then find out the anomaly of squib births
and prevent it."
"Speaking of magical children," Lily smiled, looking at Tom. "James and I are looking
forward, especially considering that no child of Harry will be a squib with his lurne blood..."
What the hell was lurne!? Harry kept on hearing that about himself. He had an idea based on
what he had heard so far, but still was unclear why this magical heritage was so celebrated
and why everyone were so focused on it.
Riddle shifted uncomfortably, and Harry noticed that he slightly clenched his jugular
muscles. It was almost unnoticeable, but Harry was watching him closely.
"Of course," Tom said, glancing at Harry briefly as if to check his reaction. "We are looking
forward too."
"No," Harry got up against his better judgement. "I am not adopting a child and playing
house with you."
"Harry," Lily admonished. "That's no way to speak to your husband. Sweetheart, where are
your manners? I have taught you better."
"That's alright," Riddle smiled at his mother. "Harry is under a lot of stress recently. Aren't
you, baby? But don't worry, we will not adopt any children from the project if you don't want
to. Besides, your mother was referring to having our own children."
Harry had no idea what Riddle was sputtering. It seemed his father was happy with whatever
he was saying, though. The man smirked and patted Riddle's back. Harry felt betrayed. Also,
if they wanted Harry's own children maybe they shouldn't have married him off to Riddle.
Neither of them were exactly equipped with childbearing abilities. So the conversation was
nonsense as far as Harry was concerned.
"You have done tremendous work, Tom," he told him proudly. "This project will set a new
era in the wizarding world."
"You are very hardworking," Lily smiled softly. "Britain should be proud to have a Minister
for Magic as foresighted as you are. Magical children should not be raised in the Muggle
world and end up feeling like outsiders when they learn of their gifts."
"They will always be treated like outsiders," Harry said, staring at Riddle. "But..."
"Harry!" Lily scolded, not letting him finish what he wanted to say about the crazy blood
fanatics. "That's not a nice thing to say."
"It is the truth," Riddle interfered. "But it doesn't have to be. This is what we are working
for."
Harry rolled his eyes. Like he didn't know this power-hungry arsehole's agenda. Who did he
think he was trying to fool?
A wave of anger twisted Riddle's features. Wait? Was he right? Was that this whole project
they were talking about the whole day? They wanted to take away magical children from
their Muggle parents and put them in wizarding orphanages?
"You can't be serious?!" Harry got up. "You can't just deprive children of their parents just
because they don't have magic."
"Harry," this time it was his father who spoke. "Love, sit down. This is none of your concern.
Do not contradict your husband. It is not a good look for you."
Harry sat down, fuming. He told himself to calm down and act like he didn't want to curse his
own father. He was going to dismantle this whole insanity. He just needed to pretend
everything was fine.
"I am sorry," he said, taking a deep breath. "I didn't want to sound... contrarian. I just care so
much about magical children. I don't want them to experience the pain of having no parents."
"Awww, sweetheart," Lily gushed. "They will be taken care of. You shouldn't worry."
Riddle was staring at him with mild confusion. It was as if he was trying to figure out why
Harry was acting out of ordinary. Harry smirked internally. Things were going to change.
Maybe it was fate for him to be here and stop this insane plan of Riddle.
"You are right," he said with a sweet smile. "I am tired. I guess, we should take our leave too.
Don't you agree, Tom?"
He stared at Riddle pointedly. "Of course," Riddle gave him a tight-lipped smile. "If you are
tired, we can retire."
"You should stay here," James said suddenly. "Harry looks like he is about to pass out. My
poor boy! Lily, have one of the elves prepare the guestroom. There is no need for you to go
back home at this time, Tom."
"Thank you for the invitation, sir," Riddle politely nodded. "We can spend the night here."
His mother rushed to give the elves instructions, and soon they were able to wish goodnight
to his parents and go to the bedroom. Harry pulled his shoes off, the moment elves closed the
door and vanished. The shoes were not bad, but his feet still felt sore. This Harry definitely
wasn't used to standing up for hours. That's for sure.
"I need a bath," he sighed, pushing the door to the bathroom open. "God, I am exhausted like
I have been battling fairies."
The bathroom was amazing. The marble tiles and the beautiful mother of pearl-encrusted
walls gave the place a sort of regal excellence while the pretty, enchanted candle lights shed
tender, soft light, making the bathroom appear cosy and warm. Harry extended his magic to
the taps and wordlessly rolled them open. The hot water rapidly filled the tub, and the steam
started to rise.
He discarded his clothing, cast a quick folding charm and modified packing charm to place
them on the counter. He was pretty good at household magic since he had to do everything
for himself.
This version of himself had a slender, lightly toned body, smooth and clean with silky skin.
Harry was puzzled how anyone could have such smooth skin that it felt like he was running
his fingers over a patch of silk and not human skin. There were no scars, or marks. It was
bizarre. Even his toenails were trimmed and manicured. Well, he didn't have the need to
ponder over this, but he would perhaps need to upkeep the body the way previous Harry did
to avoid any suspicion.
He stuck his toe into the water to check the temperature and finding the comforting warmth
satisfied stepped into the tub and lay down. There were various salts, body washes and body
gels. He had no idea what was what, so he simply waved his hand to dump a bit of everything
into the water.
It was so cosy and comfortable that he didn't even realise when he dozed off. It had been a
long day.
Tom stared at the bathroom door and sighed. Finally, the circus was over. If only he could be
at home in his study and have a few moments to himself, away from everyone, his idiot
husband, his obdurate father-in-law, all of the witches and wizards from the Ministry and
their ignorant pureblood children. But here he was, in his father-in-law's lavish guestroom,
waiting for his brainless twat of a husband to finish taking a bath.
Tom loosened his tie. He could use a shower. He did take quick showers, growing up in
stingy Muggle orphanage taught him a thing or two about efficiency. Opening the bathroom
door to the left, he hopped in the shower. He didn't know how long he could live like this, but
Potters did give him the power he wanted. James Potter opened so many closed doors for him
and a lot of pureblood wizards were envious of him, for marrying Harry Potter, the most
desired wizard ever. He could see Harry's appeal, if the twat kept his mouth shut.
He was pretty. There was no denying to that, but Tom hated him, the only thing keeping him
tied to Harry was his desire to be powerful and never feel weak and vulnerable again. He
wondered why his Muggle parents abandoned him, he had tried to find them when he grew
up, but he was not successful in his search.
He got out of the shower, dried his hair with a quick spell and walked into the bedroom. He
sat down on the bed. Sleeping came hard to him. His mind was always awake. There were
still stacks of newspaper left on the bedside table. The elf must have forgotten to take them
away. Tom grabbed the paper and flicked through the pages. It was mostly nonsense. The
Daily Prophet was uncompromisingly asinine.
He set the paper aside and tried to read a book. After about half an hour, he realised that even
for his spoiled, cossetted husband this was a bit overboard. What was he doing in the
bathroom for so long? Tom shut the book and got up. He knocked on the door.
"Harry?" he called.
There was no response. He flicked his wand and opened the door. The bathroom was covered
in warm steam. His husband was lying in the tub.
"Harry," he said firmly, getting annoyed that the brat was ignoring him. "Are you planning to
sleep in there?"
There was no response. He walked up closer only to discover that Harry was asleep. Just how
pampered the man was to fall asleep after a few hours of fulfilling a social obligation. Tom
couldn't fathom.
"You are going to drown yourself one of these days," he muttered annoyed, caressing Harry's
soft face. "Such a beautiful face for such a horrid bitch."
He leaned over and scooped him up into his arms. Tom, picking him up, cast a quick spell to
get rid of the water dripping on the floor. Harry's thin, naked body was so warm against his
cold skin.
"You are such a liar, Riddle," Harry murmured half-asleep and clung tighter to him.
Chapter End Notes
Guys, your response was so supportive that I just couldn't wait to post this chapter. I
love reading your speculations and predication for the plot and sometimes when you
guys get it right, I have this proud parent moment. heheh. Please let me know what you
think of this chapter, and what you are looking forward to. Also, let me know what was
your favourite moment in this chapter.
Chapter 4
Chapter Notes
Thank you for all the support for the previous chapter. I hope you are still enjoying the
story.
Being in such close proximity, Tom could smell him. Harry carried the scent of sweet spring
flowers, fresh like newly blossomed snowdrops, fighting their way from underneath the
snow. His lithe naked form, still covered in droplets of water like green meadow early in the
morning sprinkled with dew, was holding onto Tom so sweetly. His skin was soft and
smooth, his wet hair clinging to his temples, alluring and sinful. Tom could not deny the
physical attraction he had for his flexile-limbed husband.
Harry Potter was an ethereal beauty, a prize Tom had won, a trophy he wasn't sure was worth
his wounds. James and Lily Potter's pretty pureblood son was the wet dream of many wizards
and witches, but this man belonged to Tom; he was his and his only. And yet, Tom felt
nothing more than carnal lust and resentment for this spoiled, petulant 'princess'.
He gently dropped Harry on the bed, begrudgingly admitting that no matter how many times
he'd seen the man's naked body, it looked more beautiful each time. He brushed away the
silky strands of hair from Harry's forehead, his fingertips gently kissing over the smooth
expanse.
"You have nice hands," Harry mumbled, half-asleep. "Too bad they are hands of a murderer."
Tom had never killed anybody. He did torture people, and he inflicted pain much worse than
a Cruciatus curse could do, making those at the point end of his wand wish they were simply
killed, but no one has died at his hands. He did everything for his father-in-law. He knew
deep down that he had it in himself to kill someone. He didn't enjoy torturing anyone but also
did not feel much of anything for them. He didn't care for them.
He looked around for a clean nightshirt for Harry, but finding nothing simply used one of his
own. He had clothes left behind here as he had spent nights working with James. His shirt
was too big on Harry. But Harry was half-asleep and Tom didn't give a shit about his
husband's fashion sense while the pretty thing was in his bed.
When he lay down next to Harry and closed his eyes, trying to sort his thoughts, the sweet,
soothing smell of Harry reached his nose again. He turned towards Harry and pulled him into
his arms and imagined for a second that his husband was not Harry Potter. Harry felt so small
and fragile in his arms. Tom wouldn't need to use magic, he could crush him with his bare
hands. He wrapped his hands tightly around Harry's thin form and gripped him possessively.
The warmth of the man's slim body and his soothing smell lulled Tom into sleep.
He had a dreamless night for the first time in many days, strangely comforted by Harry's
soothing magic. It was strange. Tom wasn't sure what had changed, but the way Potter
smelled was so soft. The brat always smelled good and took care of himself, but now there
was something comforting, light and tender that was entwined with magic. He didn't ponder
over it much and allowed himself to relax.
Harry woke up in the middle of the night. It was as if there was a defense mechanism set in
his brain that set the alarms on after a prolonged peace. He had been on the run for months,
fighting Death Eaters, hiding and always vigilant. He jerked, trying to get up, but warm arms
were holding him down, tightly wrapped around him and someone's heavy leg was gripping
his legs. Disoriented and half-asleep, Harry pawed the bed looking for his wand, trying to
free him from whoever was holding him down until the memories of what happened
yesterday rushed back like a tropical rain.
Tom Riddle was asleep and didn't seem to be bothered by Harry's intense fight of trying to
free himself. Harry thrashed about for a minute and realise that he couldn't free himself from
the vice grip of his newfound husband, gave up and laid still. He remembered being in the
bathtub and realised with horror that Tom must have carried him out of the tub. He was
totally arse-naked. Merlin! Harry was going to get brain damage from the embarrassment.
His mortal enemy had seen him not only naked, but he had touched him and clothed him.
Harry squirmed trying to move his head out and see if he could tell if it was morning or not,
but Tom bloody Riddle was holding him so tightly, one would think Harry was a delicacy in a
starving man's hand. And if he thought things couldn't get bad, he was wrong, because his
squirming had gotten him even closer to Riddle and to Harry's absolute horror, the man's
erection was pressed against his bare ass. The shirt he was wearing had bunched around his
waist.
His boggart had just changed from a dementor into his bloody nightmare!
"Why are you awake so early?" Riddle's voice came smooth and without a hint of sleep.
Harry knew that he was asleep a second ago. It was strange how quickly Riddle became alert.
"Ugh," Harry complained, moving about. "Why are you holding me like I am your bloody
wand? Let go of me."
Riddle sighed. "Just when have you started speaking in such an undignified manner?" he
asked, moving up and trapping Harry underneath his tall, broad form. "Is this another ploy to
make my life miserable?"
Harry stared up at Riddle's lifeless gray eyes. The man was handsome. Too bad he was a
psycho.
"The world doesn't revolve around you," Harry snapped. "Just let go of me."
He couldn't help but stare at Riddle's bare chest. He gulped, hoping Riddle didn't notice
anything and tried to push him off again.
Riddle grabbed his arms and pinned them above his head on the soft pillows. "Stop punching
me like a petulant child," he chided. "What's up with you today? What else is not to your
liking?"
Harry reminded himself that he had decided to play along and took a deep breath. "Just let go
of me," he asked. "I need to go to... freshen up."
Riddle stared down at him, but loosened his grip. "Don't fall asleep in the tub again," he told
him, moving off of Harry and sitting on the other side of the bed.
"I am sorry," he mumbled, standing up and pulling down the shirt to cover his naked body. "I
was really tired yesterday. But you didn't need to... um... well, pull me out of the tub, okay! I
would have woken up eventually."
Tom was already dressed and tying his tie while Harry was standing there like an idiot,
stuttering. Well, the Dark Lord was fast like a soldier in the army getting dressed for a drill.
"Please get ready," Riddle told him politely, but there was a dismissive tone layering his
voice. "My schedule is packed today. I need to be at work."
Harry rushed to wash his face, cast a cleaning spell on his body, fixed his hair and found set
of new clothes left by the elf on the counter. He quickly put them on and walked out. Riddle
was reading a newspaper when he walked back into the bedroom. He looked surprised for
some reason but didn't say anything.
His parents were having tea and his mother insisted on them staying for breakfast despite
Tom's reluctance, they had a quick breakfast before apparating home. Despite this home
being one he shared with Riddle, Harry was strangely glad to be back. Dobby was already in
the drawing room, but he wasn't alone. There was someone sitting on the sofa, rigid and
awkward, staring at Harry.
"Dobby is so happy to see Master Harry," the elf said excitedly, making Harry smile.
"Barty," Riddle's voice brought Harry out of his happy place. "You'll be watching my
husband. Make sure he does not get in any trouble. Am I clear?"
Barty Crouch Jr, who had impersonated Moody becoming one of the most effective DADA
teachers Harry had had, almost dropped on the floor, staring at Riddle with such gratitude and
worship in his eyes it was sickening. "Yes, my Lord," he hurried to say. "I will make sure he
is well watched after."
Creep!
Tom nodded and turned to Harry. He gripped Harry's chin and tilted his head, whispering in
Harry's ear. "Behave, baby," he told him in a mocking tone. "Or it will be like this for the rest
of your life."
Harry forced himself to smile and did everything in his power not to punch Riddle in the
face. But then Riddle went on and planted a chaste kiss on top of his head and turned to
Crouch.
Barty nodded. Minister's husband was even prettier up close. Barty couldn't believe how
absolutely perfect the young man was. He felt proud for talking Tom into marrying this
ethereal creature of vivid dreams. There was a soft blush on his cheeks. Barty was happy for
Tom. Tom deserved something as perfect and beautiful as the Potter family's pureblood child.
He smiled at the beautiful man and followed Riddle into a large office.
"My Lord," he said expectantly waiting for instructions once they were inside. Tom Riddle
had always helped him since they were students at school. When the rest of the Slytherins
were being horrible to him, Tom was the only one there for him. He was older than Barty for
a couple of years, but Barty felt like Tom Riddle's maturity made him more of a father or an
older brother figure he wished he had.
"Don't let that pretty face fool you, Barty," Tom smiled. "My husband is a menace. I want you
to make sure he is safe and that no one is hanging around him. I don't want the Nott incident
to repeat."
"Yes, my Lord, if I see Nott even so much as looking his way, I will hex that git to his
mummy's lap."
"Just make sure the princess isn't getting into any trouble," Riddle sighed. "I will see you in
the evening."
Barty felt honored to be tasked with Tom's husband's security. It had been about eight months
after the wedding and Barty hadn't had the pleasure to meet Harry other than a few times he
had caught sight of him outside with his mother.
After Tom left, he found Harry sitting on the sofa in the drawing room, gazing out at the
garden through the large window. His heart leaped out of his chest, seeing Harry's cute face
and the demure expression on his face. Barty smiled.
"Lord..." he wasn't sure if he should call him Riddle, since for him Lord Riddle was Tom.
"Riddle?"
The pureblood beauty tilted his head to look at him. "Ugh," he shook his head. "Just call me
Harry."
Not only was he pretty, he was also so sweet! Barty nodded happily. "Harry," he said with a
smile. "It is an honor to be your guard. Let me know if there is anything you need."
Harry didn't respond and for a while they fell silent. Barty kept extending shy glances toward
Tom's husband, feeling overwhelmed by how pretty and graceful he was and trying hard not
to stare. How could anyone be this elegant while simply sprawled on a sofa? Barty sat on the
other side of the room, scanning the area for possible security deadspots. His stomach
growled. In his excitement to be here, he had skipped breakfast.
"Would you like something to eat, Barty?" Harry's soft silky voice made him almost fall
down on his face.
He stared at Harry bewildered and stammered. "Ahhh... eh...umm..." he wasn't sure what to
say. Harry was looking at him expectantly.
"Dobby," Harry called, sitting up. The elf immediately popped into the room. "Can you bring
breakfast for Barty?"
"Yes, Master Harry," the elf said. "Would you like to have something too?"
"No," Harry shook his slender neck. "I have already had breakfast at my parents' place."
The elf nodded happily, disappeared and came back with food. Barty had never been offered
food at anyone else's home. He was nervous his table manners were not refined enough, and
he would annoy the pretty pureblood man. Everyone always gossiped about Harry Potter
Riddle as being a spoiled, mean-spirited diva, but Barty could feel in his gut it was all lies.
Harry was kind and caring. He even noticed that Barty was hungry and offered food.
"Don't mind me," Harry said as if sensing his uncertainty. "Just eat your food."
Barty nodded and dug in. It was delicious. His heart flattered at the thought of the food being
provided to him by Tom's beautiful spouse. He ate quickly, trying not to make any strange
sounds, but it seemed Harry was not really paying attention to him. He was deep in thought.
"I am going to take a bath," he said getting up. "Dobby, can you help me."
Barty got up too, wondering if he was supposed to follow him. "I will be in my room," he
told Barty, seeing the hesitation on his face. "I am not going to drown there or anything.
Dobby will be with me. Don't worry and you don't need to tell Tom. It's not like he is
expecting you to stand in the bathroom with me."
Barty turned red. Of course, he wasn't going to ogle the minister's pretty husband. He
respected Tom and wasn't one of those leeches that wanted to steal Harry. He was loyal and
devoted to Tom.
"God knows what that psycho will do if you tell him," Harry muttered under his nose and
walked away.
Barty blinked confused unsure who Harry was speaking about, but he followed him and
stood guard in front of the bedroom door.
Barty stood in front of closed doors, wand in his hand like a guard dog, eyes scanning the
surroundings. He was ashamed to admit that he had believed some of the gossip he had heard
about Harry. But it was all lies, now he could see. All these jealous people said all kinds of
horrible things about Harry and made even Tom doubt the sincerity of his husband, but the
person Barty saw today was a piece of pure light.
When Harry came out of his bedroom, freshly dressed and glowing, Barty stared at him like a
fish out of water. When he thought, Harry couldn't be more enchanting, here he was prettier
and cuter than a moment before.
"But your husband forbade you from leaving the house today," Barty said dumbly.
"Am I a prisoner?" Harry rolled his eyes irritated, making Barty feel guilty for upsetting him.
"You can come with me if that's what you are worried about."
"If you need anything," Barty said, "I can request one of the secretaries get it for you."
"No," Harry sighed. "I want to go out. Merlin! Is he going to put me in a cage?"
Barty looked at him conflicted. Tom had ordered him to watch Harry and make sure he wasn't
getting into any trouble or sneaking out. He technically didn't tell Barty that Harry couldn't
leave. If he accompanied Harry, that wouldn't mean Harry sneaked out.
"Okay," he agreed after thinking for a bit, "we can go out. I will come with you. Please stay
by my side, so I can protect you."
Of course, Harry didn't think he needed to be protected. He was so pure and kind that he
couldn't imagine what horrible things all these wizards and witches could do. But Barty
would die before he let anyone touch this beautiful angel.
Diagon Alley was much busier than Barty would have preferred. There were too many people
and too many unworthy eyes on his Lord's dainty little husband. He glared sharply at anyone
who dared to linger their gaze at the gorgeous lurne. Harry didn't really seem to notice how
he was turning heads, how all of these lowlifes were eying him with lust and desire, ogling
his pretty, delicate body. Barty was getting pissed.
How dare they! Harry belonged to Tom. Barty gave death stares to the onlookers, and some
of them, recognising him, backed off in fear. He moved his hand toward his wand holster and
drew the wand. These assholes better knew what would happen to them if they continued
trying his patience.
Barty's eyes were trained on Harry. He couldn't afford to let any harm touch the pretty thing.
Harry seemed so innocent and oblivious. It was beyond Barty how the vicious rumours had
portrayed him as a spoiled socialite when Harry was anything but a beautiful angel.
Harry suddenly stopped, making Barty come to an abrupt halt as well, looking around to see
what caught his attention.
"Piss of little Mudblood," someone was sneering at a little boy, hand waving dismissively and
trying to push him out of what looked like a bookstore.
The aggressive loud noise must have annoyed Harry and distracted him, so Barty was about
to interfere and tell the bloke to cut it off. But before he could step in, the bulky man actually
pushed the little boy, and the boy almost fell.
Almost...
The little boy fell backwards, stumbled and fell into Harry's arms before he could hit the
patchy ground. Barty stared in awe and it seemed like everyone gasped for air for a moment
as if the air suddenly had thickened so dramatically that breathing had become impossible.
How could this little Mudblood just slam into Minister's pretty little husband?
Barty came forward to pull off the little vermin away, but he paused confused, staring at the
scene unfolding in front of him.
"Are you okay?" Harry steadied the boy, holding him tightly and checking to make sure he
had no scraps on his knees. Barty stared, still not comprehending what was happening, and
his mouth gaping in shock. "Are you hurt?"
The boy shook his head and wiped the tears escaping his eyes with the sleeve of his dirty
jumper.
"Just what is wrong with you?" Harry stood up and glared at the stocky man. "Why would
you push a child like this?"
"I am not about to let some dirty Mudblood into my store, princess," he mocked. "You look
like a pretty pureblood thing, why are you sullying yourself with this filth?"
Who the fuck did this asshole think he was? Barty brought his wand out and immediately
aimed it at the guy, standing in front of Harry, shielding him from the gaze of this moron.
"Circe, isn't that Lord Potter's son with him?" someone said horrified.
The shopkeeper looked at Barty with concern and raised his hands. "I didn't mean to..."
"Just what did you mean?" Harry spoke, stepping forward and surprising Barty. "Pushing a
child and calling him that disgusting word must make you feel so much more superior."
"I...um... eh," the man stammered clearly, realising that insulting Potter's son was going to get
him in even more trouble than an issue with a Ministry official could get him into. "Sorry
about that. Hey brat, you can come and shop in my store."
There was a rage in Harry's gaze that Barty felt could burn him alive. "Unbelievable," Harry
sighed, taking hold of the little boy's hand. "Don't mind him. Where are your parents,
sweetheart? You shouldn't be here all alone."
"I don't have parents," the little boy said, staring at Harry. Barty realised that the little
Mudblood had been staring at Harry ever since he fell into Harry's arms. It was as if he was
hypnotised and couldn't turn his gaze away. "Are you a human?"
Harry seemed a little taken aback by the question, but he smiled and nodded. "So this is your
first time here?" he asked, taking note of the Hogwarts letter firmly clutched in the boy's
hands. "They should have had a guardian or a teacher from Hogwarts come with you. It can't
be easy alone in this place. I still remember my first time."
The boy was still starstruck. "Well," Harry said gently. "Have you gotten your wand
already?"
"No," the boy shook his head, holding up crumpled-up bills. "They won't take my money."
"That's Muggle money," Harry said with a smile. "You need to exchange it. Here, have this
for now. This should be enough to buy the supplies you need. But you can exchange the
Muggle money and buy everything you need over there. Do you see that building?"
Barty had no idea Harry knew all of this, but above everything this was yet another
confirmation of how kind and sweet he was, helping a poor Mudblood orphan, defending him
so fiercely. These nasty gossipers had even Tom convinced that Harry was a spoiled, petty
brat. Barty was infuriated. As an undersecretary, he would make sure to put all of this
disgusting slander to rest. These vermin didn't have any right to tarnish Harry's reputation.
"You are so pretty," the little boy said in awe, making Harry laugh.
Of course, even this Mudblood couldn't ignore the ethereal beauty in front of him. Harry
helped the boy to get his books and school supplies while talking about Hogwarts excitedly,
answering all the stupid questions the brat asked him without a hint of annoyance or
irritation. So incredibly patient and brilliant!
Tom needed to know about this. In rare moments of genuine frustration, he had confessed to
Barty about his fears of having children with Harry. Barty knew that Lord Potter expected
them to have an heir soon, but Tom expressed reluctance, mentioning how cruel and petty the
lurne was and what neglect and lack of love any children they had would face. There was no
cruel bone in the body of this exquisite creature.
Harry spend that afternoon, going from shop to shop and helping the boy get his wand and
robes and explained so many things about magic and the school and shared his own
experience of attending the school for the first time.
When they parted ways and Harry wished him good luck with the school, it was already
afternoon.
Harry felt tired. He was still trying to acclimate to his new life. He knew that no matter how
much he wanted to go back to his friends, to his world, there was no go-back ticket for him.
He knew very little about his new life, and also the fact that the other version of himself had
been probably murdered troubled him greatly. He needed to get himself a wand, but having
Crouch breath down his neck didn't really give him the opportunity to do some needed
shopping.
Barty Crouch Jr was staring at him like a total creep. Harry had zero idea of what was going
on in the man's head, but he could tell that this version of Crouch was sickeningly devoted to
Voldemort as well.
He had spent most of his money on hand, getting supplies for the little boy. He still had
money to buy a wand, but he couldn't do it unless he found a way to get rid of Barty. He
looked at the twitchy man and smiled stiffly. Well, Harry could always get a wand later.
"I guess we can return home," he told Barty. "I can go shopping another time. Maybe with
my mother."
Barty nodded and moved to offer his arm for apparation, but a loud screechy voice
interrupted him.
"Harry?"
They both turned around and Harry was greeted by the disturbing sight of Pansy Parkinson,
Lavender Brown and... and Ginny Weasley. That was Ginny with them. His heart leaped out
of his chest as he felt his throat tighten. He was sure he had caught the sight of her dead body
in the ruins of Hogwarts just yesterday before waking up here.
"Morgana's tits! That's actually you out and about, you sly bitch," Parkinson said, walking up
to him, and to Harry's never-ending horror, gave him a hug. "Didn't I tell you girls?"
"Wow Potter," Lavender said coyly, raising an eyebrow. "We thought your hubby would have
locked you up after that stint with Theo. And my goodness, is that Undersecretary Crouch
with you?"
Harry blinked, trying to understand how to respond and noticed how uncomfortable Crouch
looked. That made two of them.
"Yes, Barty here is accompanying me," Harry said politely, letting the situation unfold before
he could make faulty assumptions and do something that could complicate things for him.
"More like guarding him like a dog," Lavender whispered under her nose with an ill-
concealed giggle.
Pansy elbowed her. "Don't be rude," she rolled her eyes and turned to Harry. "We are going to
have coffee, will you join us?"
"They serve your favourite apple tarts there, Harry," Ginny said earnestly. "Please come with
us."
"Yeah, you should come to catch up and all. We are friends after all," Lavender said, pulling
her hair back.
"You can join too, Mr Undersecretary," Pansy whispered under her lashes, staring at Barty
with a look that almost said she was going to eat him alive if he refused.
"I guess a tart and a cup of coffee won't hurt," Harry smiled. "Let's go Barty."
Harry couldn't believe he would be friends with Pansy Parkinson and Lavender Brown.
Ginny he understood, but the other two? He felt awkward and strange walking with them. He
smiled at Ginny, his heart swelling at the realization that she was fine at least in this world.
There was a sense of loss gnawing at Harry's heart. He knew that even though this was
Ginny, this was not his Ginny. He was still grieving the loss of his life, but he had no
opportunity to properly reflect on his feelings.
The place was quiet and nice. The tart was amazing. Barty sat next to him and was staring at
him like the creep he was, making Harry lose concentration.
"By the way, Daphne is still seething," Pansy chuckled. "She is really upset about being
kicked out of our group."
"Her sister is spreading rumours about Harry. I say that bitch needs to be dealt with before
things get out of control," Lavender chimed in, sipping from her coffee.
"Astoria?" Pansy scowled. "She has a thing for Draco. We should cut Daphne off. Serves her
right after she bitched about Harry bringing Ginny in with that house rivalry nonsense."
So Daphne Greengrass was part of the group, but Harry wanted to be friends with Ginny too
and that caused a rift? Harry was getting a headache trying to figure out what was going on.
He silently ate his tart, hoping they would stop gossiping. He still couldn't believe he was
friends with Pansy. Harry noticed that Crouch was feeling extra nervous and using the
serving spoon, he put a piece of pastry with chocolate glaze and raspberry filling on Barty's
plate.
At least Crouch was suffering along with him.
"Yeah," Lavender nodded snottily, "boys can care about that stupid house rivalry, we
pureblood girls should stick together."
She waved her hand around them. Harry breathed in sharply and stared inquisitively at
Lavender. Why was she lumping Harry with them anyway? For one he was a guy, and for
two, he didn't give two shits about this bullshit.
"No one should care about house rivalries," he said instead. "Besides we are adults and not
students at Hogwarts, getting points to care."
"Seems like your Slytherin husband is rubbing off on you," Pansy said with a smirk.
"Of course, his husband is rubbing off on him," Lavender licked her lips suggestively.
Barty choked on the drink he was having, and Harry stared at the girls horrified. He turned
his attention to Crouch and patted him on the back.
How could these be Harry's friends? He looked at Ginny again, and she looked at him shyly.
"Here Barty, have some water," Harry poured water for the man and glared at the girls.
"We missed having you with us for shopping," Pansy suddenly complained, playing with a
strand of her hair. "I have heard there is some kind of Ministry ball. My father says it's for an
important charity event. Need to buy something nice."
Harry nodded.
"My cousin?" Harry looked at the girls, trying to scrap his brain to remember who she was
talking about.
"No way he will date you Pansy," Lavender laughed. "Even if Harry asks him, and we both
know how much Malfoy likes Harry."
"If Harry puts in the word," Pansy countered. "I will get a date with him. I never said I
wanted to date him. Just have a date with him. Circe! Hold your horses! Draco listens to
Harry. His precious cousin. Wouldn't let anyone date him at Hogwarts."
"Yeah," Lavender agreed. "He is awfully protective of you. And yeah was meaning to ask,
what the hell were you doing with Theo?"
Harry cleared his throat. "Nothing," he said politely. "I was a little drunk. I probably was
throwing up on him or something."
"Theo's such a slimy bastard," Pansy and Lavender looked at each other.
Ginny hadn't said a word. "How are you doing, Ginny?" Harry asked, smiling at her, hoping
to change the subject
"I am good," she said with a smile back. "Thank you for inviting me. I always admired you."
Harry nodded awkwardly. This wasn't right. His life was not right. He didn't want to stay here
any longer and be reminded of how screwed up things were. He wanted to go away. He got
up.
"This was nice girls," he said softly, "I need to be home though."
"Yeah, wouldn't want you to get in trouble with the Minister," the girls laughed.
Harry's smile strained. He wished them goodbye and left hastily with Barty.
"Are you feeling okay, Harry?" Crouch asked when Harry looked like he was about to pass
out as they stepped into the manor. "If you are not feeling well I can call Lord Riddle."
Harry shook his head. He didn't have the strength to be around Voldemort. His life was torn
apart because of that murderous psychopath. It had been just a day, and now that the shock of
finding himself in this new world was wearing off, exhaustion and sadness were setting in.
He sighed, rubbed his eyes and turned to Crouch.
"I will be in my room, resting," he told him, trying not to sound terse. "You can stay in the
drawing room. If you need food or something to drink, feel free to ask Dobby."
Barty looked at him like an idiot, and it looked like he was going to argue, but then he pursed
his lips resigned and nodded. "Call me if anything suspicious happens," he said earnestly.
Harry wanted to roll his eyes. Like he needed Barty Crouch Jr's protection. He could take
care of the git even without a wand right here. Harry had learnt to throw a pretty mean punch
after dealing with Dudley and his dumb gang of friends.
"Thank you Barty," he smiled instead, gritting his teeth and forcing himself not to let his
Gryffindor pride make him do things that he would regret. People already treated him like a
goddamn delicate maiden. They would have assumed he had gone mad if he suddenly acted
weird and Merlin knows with Voldemort for a husband, he would be locked up in some
psychiatric ward for wizards.
Harry didn't wait for a response and turned around towards the room he had woken up the
previous morning. It still surprised him how full of light and bright the room was. It was
roomy with furniture in light tones and colours as if this version of Harry also despised dark
tiny rooms after spending all his life in a cupboard.
He slumped face down on the soft bed and sighed at the comfort the smooth silk sheets
provided. Did he share this room with Voldemort? Well did the other version of himself do?
It didn't really look like something either Voldemort or even this Tom Riddle would have had
for a bedroom. But then again Harry here was a spoiled pureblood socialite so this was
probably his room, and Riddle probably just slept here.
If that was the case, he needed to find a way to get rid of Riddle. While sleeping with the
dark lord unintentionally last night wasn't something he planned, he certainly didn't want a
repeat. Maybe he could pretend to be sick until he got his hands on a wand?
He sighed.
He turned around, his head at the edge of the bed, hanging down and staring at the room
upside down. He noticed something strange stuck under the dresser on the other side of the
room. He blinked, trying to clear his vision. It glimmered reflecting the bright light coming
from the large windows. Harry reluctantly rolled over and got up.
His curiosity got the better of him, and it needed to be satisfied. He walked up to the dresser,
crouched down and narrowed his eyes. It looked like some kind of ornate small chest. He
stuck his hand under the dresser and tried to pry it out. His other self didn't hide it very well if
that was his intention. He was starting to get convinced that this Harry Potter was a dolt.
The chest was not magically warded or enchanted. It was locked with a key which was just
another piece of evidence that his other version was an inept birdbrain. With a flick of his
fingers, he broke the lock and opened the chest.
He stared at the contents confused. He wasn't expecting collection of letters in the chest.
Whatever this was, the other Harry wanted them hidden. The letters smelled of magic like
they were encrypted with spells so only Harry's eyes could see them. It was clearly done by
someone else far more skillful than his other version.
Harry grabbed a handful of letters and walked to the bed. He felt bad about snooping into the
dead guy's personal correspondence, but technically the dead guy was him and these letters
could shed light on his death. Who knew maybe whoever killed the other Harry was unhappy
that it was unsuccessful and would try again.
He skimmed through them, and they seemed to be love letters, all of them signed by someone
with the initials GG. So Harry was cheating on Voldemort except not with Nott but with some
mysterious GG. Harry tried to read them, but they seemed endless praise of Harry's beauty
and some cringy musings about how much this mysterious suitor had missed his time with
Harry. It was all pretty vapid.
He was going to leave it at that until he realised that there was a hidden compartment at the
button of the chest. He quickly opened it and realised that these were the latest letters sent a
couple of weeks ago.
"Beloved,
I can not wait to embrace you in my arms and feel the warmth of your beautiful body. Merlin
knows, my heart aches thinking about you being with that filthy Mudblood. He doesn't
deserve you, and I will never understand and accept your father's decision of separating us.
That filthy scum must have threatened or blackmailed your family to get his dirty hands on
you.
Father isn't happy about the situation either, but he focuses too much on Riddle being the
Minister and doesn't understand that you are a prisoner kept in a cage. I have expressed
interest in returning to politics if Father helps me free you, my love. He has promised his
support if I get him what he wants. I will do everything for you, but you must already know
this.
I am glad you have followed my advice and brought in Ginny Weaselly. I remember that little
redhead was enamored with Riddle. Introduce them and make the affair between her and
Riddle happen. And if it does happen, I will make sure every newspaper writes about it. Your
father will drop Riddle off immediately. Riddle's reputation needs to be tainted with the
public and especially with your father.
Love,
GG."
Harry wrinkled his face after reading the letter. Is this why he had suddenly befriended
Ginny? So he could get Ginny and Riddle closer and have them have an affair? This Ginny
didn't seem that kind of person and who the hell was this GG? He sounded like a pompous
ass. Harry didn't want to be taken back by surprise when this git suddenly showed up
somewhere. Dealing with a husband was already too much work. Harry didn't have the
nerves for a side piece. This whole plotting and scheming reeked of Slytherin.
Tom hated using the floo network. He contemplated apparating outside the manor and
walking back into the house. The powder got everywhere, and he found this method of travel
very crude. He was feeling exhausted though. Normally his work would hold him at the
Ministry for longer hours, but he was discussing the education budget for Hogwarts with two
of his former professors and dealing with them exhausted him more than he could have
anticipated.
Dumbledore and McGonagall were awfully irritating, and Tom had to grit his teeth to keep
his polite countenance from slipping. The meeting was cut short to his surprise as something
happened at the school that required the headmaster's and the deputy headmistress's attention
immediately. He usually would have stayed longer working on some proposal drafts, but
dealing with his former professors had drained him enough for him to consider returning
home on time.
Tom dusted his jacket as he stepped out of the large fireplace. It was quiet. He honestly
wasn't sure what he was expecting. It was almost time for dinner. Harry's elf was probably
already seeing preparations for meal. Tom sighed and walked into the drawing room, he
dropped papers he had taken with him on the table and headed towards the dimwit's bedroom.
Barty was pacing around the room with the most eager and serious expression on his face.
Tom always wondered why Barty wasn't sorted into Hufflepuff. He was studious and
intelligent, but his loyalty to him was his most prominent trait which was why Tom brought
him in as soon as he became the Minister. He needed to surround himself with supporters,
and Barty was always loyal to him. Barty's appointment as the undersecretary was met with
some reluctance, but Tom didn't care.
"Sir... um... My Lord," Barty greeted him excitedly, stopping dead in his tracks.
"Harry's in the room I take it," he said, gesturing towards the closed doors. "Did he give you
any trouble?"
"No... My Lord," Barty stammered but shook his head vehemently. "Um... He was very... In
fact I really need to tell you something very important about Harry."
Tom quirked a brow at Barty's use of Harry's given name. He sighed. What did the princess
do this time that even poor Barty was willing to complain about him to Tom? He knew Harry
could be very mean. He was petty and catty. Barty wasn't used to people like Harry. He did
grow up in wizarding circles, and his father held a good position in the wizarding
government, but he didn't deal much with the children of aristocrats, especially one as spoiled
as James and Lily Potter's son.
"Of course, Barty," Tom nodded graciously, keeping his friendly demeanour.
That bad, huh? Tom wasn't sure what the little brat did to get his undersecretary squirm, but
he sure had the talent to get under people's skin. His pursed lips reluctantly curled into the
faintest smile as he gestured for Barty to follow him.
They turned around the corner, and Tom opened the door to his office. He let Barty walk in
and closed the door behind them.
Barty waved his hands in the air dramatically, testing Tom's patience. "It's all lies," Barty
snapped. "All of the gossip and articles and news! Vile, poisonous lies!"
Of course, the articles and news stories were all lies. Tom had taken care of it. If they kept on
publishing the truth about his little snobby husband's behaviour, Tom's reputation would be in
shambles. The brat was a magnet for creating scandals and getting in ridiculous spats with
random witches and wizards. Poor Barty probably didn't expect the bitchy side of the pretty
pureblood Potter child.
"They write all these lies about him, calling him vile names and portraying him as a spoiled
socialite, but Harry is the sweetest and the most kindest person ever," Barty declared.
Tom stared at him in disbelief. What did the brat do to the poor man?
"He is very warmhearted and attentive. When he noticed I was hungry, he offered me food.
We went for shopping, and he helped this little..."
"You went for shopping?" Tom interrupted Barty, watching the man tremble under his gaze.
"He was with me the entire time, My Lord," Barty swore. "I didn't let me out of my sight
even for a moment. You need not worry about that."
Tom continued simply staring at Barty, and the man seemed to become more nervous under
his gaze.
"Harry is not the person people say he is. He is nice. He helped this Muggle-born child to
shop for his first year school supplies and that is when everyone else was mean to the child.
Harry was the only one to step in. The bad ones are his friends... They are very vulgar and...
and..."
Tom agreed with that assessment. They might have been purebloods, but the girls Harry was
friends with were uncouth and crass. At least Lily Potter's graceful upbringing had hampered
some of Harry's worse qualities.
"Like I have said, my husband can be a little manipulative, Barty," Tom smiled. "Don't worry
about anything. Thank you for your assistance today."
"No, My Lord," Barty protested for some reason. "He is not manipulative at all. He is very
sincere. I don't want you to believe the lies about him. Please sir... just give him the chance.
You hardly spend time with him so your impression of him is tainted with all the gossip about
him. I confess I believed the gossip myself, but Harry is not like that."
Well, that was the bravest he had seen Barty be. Tom smiled. "I will take your advice into
consideration, Barty," Tom said charmingly. He didn't want to deal with the Crouch's
blabbering anymore.
Barty's face broke into a big grin. "Will you need my assistance here tomorrow?" he asked
eagerly.
"No," Tom replied. "I don't want to take you away from your Ministry responsibilities."
Barty didn't seem happy about this, but he nodded in acknowledgement. "It was no trouble to
ensure Harry's safety," the man said. "Please My Lord, call me again if I am needed."
Tom wanted to roll his eyes, but he simply nodded and led Barty out of his office. "I will see
you on Monday," he told Barty when the man got into the fireplace to use the Floo Network.
"What about my husband, Dobby?" he asked, turning to the elf. "Is he ready to be present at
the dinner?"
Tom pursed his lips. His life was a nightmare, surrounded by idiots.
Let me know which were your favourite parts. Also, anyone looking forward to some
Harry showing off his skills, that would be in the next chapter. Let me know what your
thoughts are on this chapter.
Chapter 5
Chapter Notes
I am really touched by all the feedback and comments you have left me for the story.
Thank you so much guys for being active and bringing me such joy.
Harry didn't have an appetite. He stared at the food arranged on the table by Dobby and
instead of feeling hungry, he felt sick. Riddle was sitting on the opposite side of the table,
facing him. He looked irked as he sliced the steak on his plate and stabbed the piece with his
fork. Harry didn't have patience for the man. His friends were all dead, and he could do
nothing about it. Was he just supposed to give up and live his life like some snobby
pureblood man-child?
"Are you planning to persist in playing with your food?" Riddle drawled in a clipped tone,
dropping his knife and fork on his plate. "Tell me what you are so unhappy about now."
Harry lifted his head to glare at him but didn't respond. The man was so handsome,
immaculately dressed, his hair brushed neatly, and he smelled like crisp, clean, cold winds.
His eyes were impassive, but Harry could tell from his clenched jaw that Riddle was pissed.
His eyes were somehow more lifeless than what Harry remembered from Pensieve memories
of Dumbledore. This man's eyes were lighter in colouration and shade. They were grey
instead of the brown ones that Harry remembered.
Even though Riddle in this particular universe didn't split his soul and start a genocidal
campaign, something was still off about him, and Harry could feel it. He couldn't tell what
was exactly different but the man was not an unassuming government official. There was
something in Riddle's magic that felt like a restrained firestorm. It was somewhat stifled, like
someone had subdued a warring beast inside Riddle that was ready to break its chains and
burn the world alive.
"Well," he raised an eyebrow, staring at Harry pointedly. "What is it that you want? Stop the
sulking and these little games. I don't have patience for that."
"Sulking and little games?" Harry snorted, the audacity of this arsehole to insinuate Harry
was playing some conniving games to get his way. "If I was playing a game you would know.
And stop pretending you care about what I want. Just let me be."
"Watch your tone," Riddle advised, his voice lowering threateningly. "Are you trying to drive
me mad with these new mood swings?"
"Oh, fuck off," Harry got up, throwing the dinner napkin on the table. "You are so bloody
insufferable. I am so done with this bullshit. I thought I could keep my mouth shut and live
through this fucked-up crap, but I am so done."
Riddle's eyes widened in utter disbelief, and he stared at Harry, completely baffled and
shocked. Harry was going to just leave and try to set a life for himself in Muggle London.
Whatever the consequences might be, he wasn't having this shit anymore. He was a goddamn
soldier of a war, not a bloody housewife.
"Is that the vocabulary you picked up while socialising with those vulgar friends of yours?"
Riddle asked with disgust. "What are you hoping to achieve by this? Do you not understand
your position?"
"Give me a bloody break," Harry rolled his eyes at Riddle's patronising tone.
"I've really tried with you," Riddle sighed. "From one scandal to another, moving from one
lover to another. Your disgusting behaviour stops today. I will not tolerate this anymore. You
should have known already that you were not going to marry someone of your choice, and
you should have made your peace with it."
For the life of him, he couldn't understand why, of all possible people in the world, he would
be married to Tom bloody Riddle. It made no fucking sense.
"What? Did you think that you would get to choose who to marry?" Riddle laughed. "You are
James and Lily Potter's pureblood son with Alluran blood, the first one in the last 300 years.
Didn't you know, princess, that you were going to be married off to whoever offered the most
to your father? Your father would have never agreed to marry you off to another pureblood
family. Don't you understand that if that was the case he would have had you marry your
cousin? It's not like marrying close family is such a taboo in pureblood circles. But no, your
father never wanted some other wizarding family to get their hands on you. Were you to
marry Malfoy or Nott or Lestrange, your children would have been Malfoy, Nott or
Lestrange, and your father doesn't want that."
Riddle closed his eyes, levity waning, and his features hardening with exhaustion and
resentment.
"I might be the Minister of Magic, but I am a nobody as far as wizarding families and lines
are concerned which was why I was the perfect choice for a spoiled brat like you," he said
with a sigh. "You should make peace with this idea and understand that no matter what you
do, we will never divorce. So stop this little act of rebellion, it is getting tiresome."
Harry didn't want to feel sorry for this man or the other version of himself. This wasn't his
war to fight. He just needed his wand back and once he had it, he would simply leave. How
didn't the man know that he was Salazar Slytherin's heir? That seemed suspicious.
"Well," Harry let out an air of exasperation. "You got what you wanted. Now leave me out of
this nonsense."
He turned to leave. Riddle followed him swiftly and catching up with him, grabbed his
shoulders and turned him around. Harry tried to free himself from the man's grip, but he only
tightened his hold.
"You must have always been told how special you were," he spat with venom and loathing.
"It must have gone to your pretty head. You are married to me, and I want you to remember
that. I will not tolerate infidelity or public outbursts from you anymore. You will play your
role whether you want it or not. So again, stop this childish tantrum and tell me what you
want."
"You know what, I want my wand," he said, trying to control his anger and relaxing in
Riddle's arms.
"You can't have it, because you have demonstrated to be completely inept at using it without
hurting anyone," Riddle said, not letting him go and staring into Harry's eyes with a
searching, inquisitive look like he was trying to detect a lie or a conspiracy.
"You asked me what I want," Harry insisted. "And I want my wand. How am I supposed to
protect myself without my wand?"
"Protect yourself?" Riddle wrinkled his face. "From what? You are more likely to hurt
yourself than manage to cast a proper shielding charm, and we both know it. How many
people should land in the hospital before you understand that your level of incompetence is
dangerous?"
"Fine," Harry grumbled. "How about I show you that I can use my wand safely and you give
it back to me?"
"No," Riddle sighed, pulling Harry away. "You injured people, do you understand? Your
control of your own magic is very unstable. Your magic is volatile. Not every time you cast a
levitation spell you explode the object you are trying to levitate, but it only takes once, and I
can't have you hurting people."
Harry was getting frustrated. He wasn't even sure why he thought he could make Riddle
agree to give his wand back.
"Just put a hampering spell on my wand," Harry sighed. "One that doesn't allow the full force
of the magic to be channelled. If I mess up it won't be catastrophic, and if I am able to control
my magic, you will take it off."
Harry knew how to tinker those 'parent-control' spells off of wands, so as long as Riddle
believed that Harry had a wand with magical blocks preventing the full force of magical
energy from being channelled, he could enact his plan of escaping this place, getting a second
wand and ditching the wizarding world for a while until he came up with a better plan.
Riddle was staring at him with suspicion like he could tell something was off. He brought his
hands close to Harry's face, brushed strands of hair off his face and inhaled sharply.
"Fine," he mumbled after a moment. "I will give you your wand back but you will first
demonstrate that you can cast the spells safely. I will block any spells other than the ones you
can prove you are able to cast safely. The wand will have a hampering spell just in case, and
all of this only if you agree to go to the orphanage opening tomorrow with me and act your
part dutifully."
"That's fine by me," he agreed. "As long as you promise not to go back on your word."
"I never go back on my word," Riddle said, staring into his eyes and coming so close to his
face that Harry felt the man's breath making his skin shiver instantly.
Something was wrong with Harry. The spoiled brat was capricious as ever, but his tactics had
changed, and Tom found it concerning. Tom rubbed his eyes and pushed aside the parchment.
He didn't know what was on the little airhead's mind, but wanting his wand back seemed an
unexpected request, especially considering that the princess didn't even put up much of a
resistance when it was taken away. He pouted and sulked for a couple of days but then went
on a shopping trip to France with his mother and forgot about it all.
Harry never spoke in such a vulgar manner. It was unsettling that he was becoming more and
more mentally unstable. Tom suspected he was taking Chelidonium Miniscula—a sedative
potion that was often misused to induce euphoria and intoxication. He needed to control the
brat before he ran off the rails completely and not only destroyed his political career but also
tarnished his credibility before James Potter.
It was too much work for very little reward. Just the reminder that he needed to procreate
with the bloody idiot was already putting him off any political aspirations he had had. He
couldn't stand children, and his dear little husband disliked them even more. Whatever
unfortunate soul would be born off of their union was going to be miserable.
Tom was not looking forward to spending a whole day tomorrow with Harry. Especially with
all the curious eyes of the wizarding world on them. Harry Potter attracted a lot of gossip.
The spoiled socialite was rude and disrespectful and would not hesitate to insult anyone who
he thought was slighting him anyhow. Tom had to constantly clean up the mess left behind by
the numerous scandals, and it was getting tiresome.
He sighed again and got up. It was already late. He had to work on trade agreements with
other wizarding countries. But the thoughts about his bloody husband's alarming behaviour
wouldn't leave his mind.
He neatly stacked the parchments on his desk, locked the confidential documents in the safe
and left his office.
He showered quickly, with a flick of his wand dried his hair and headed to the bedroom.
Harry was already asleep when he walked in. He was sprawled over the covers hands under
the pillow like he was holding something. Tom tilted his head to look at what Harry was
holding, but there was nothing in his hand.
He was still wearing his clothes. Tom leaned over and started undressing him. Something was
definitely wrong with Harry if he was falling asleep with his clothes on and not bothering to
pull up the covers. He smelled different too; somehow more ethereal, light and intoxicating.
Tom's hands froze on the buttons of Harry's shirt. It had been a while since he had heard that
speech. How was it possible? He stared at his sleeping husband intently, trying to understand
how this could have even happened. He had discovered in his youth that speaking with
snakes was not common. It was said to be hereditary but Tom wasn't convinced of this theory
as there were no records of any wizarding families in Britain speaking Parseltongue.
In his youth, he had thought that perhaps he had magical parents who both died and were not
from Britain thus no one came looking for him, but later on, he realised that anomalies of
magical skill occurred randomly all the time. He was incredibly magically skilled while most
purebloods were much weaker due to a lack of genetic diversity.
"You can kill me," Harry hissed in his sleep. "I don't even mind. It's not like it ever takes."
Tom ignored any further ramblings from his sleeping husband, undressed him quickly,
wrapped him in one of his shirts and went into bed himself. Harry rolled about and hugged
him. Tom didn't mind; it was always nice to have his pretty husband wrapped around him, in
his arms. If he could minimise their interactions to only short dinners and sleeping, his life
would not be as miserable.
The house belonged to Tom. He had bought it with his own resources even though James
insisted on buying them the place. It was a big house but he didn't even have his own room.
He spent most of his time at work and when he was at home he was working in his study. He
ended up always sleeping in the brat's room.
People were envious of Tom. He was the youngest Minister of Magic married to the heir of
the incredibly affluent Potter family. James Potter was the only child of his rich family, and
he married Lily Evans another rich pureblood heiress, and the two had only one child. Of
course, no one knew that Harry Potter was a nightmare and that being married to the brat
meant doing things for James Potter.
Tom closed his eyes, the warmth seeping from Harry was comforting. Sleep enveloped him
easily as Harry's soothing scent and magic surrounded his senses.
ㅤ
There were too many people. They were photographers from Daily Prophet, journalists,
commentators and various correspondents on the scene who were all rushing to snap pictures.
Harry was clutching his so-called husband's arm. He looked beautiful, dressed in elegant
robes that emphasised his jewel-like green eyes. No wonder the other Harry was a conceited
snob. He looked too pretty; even Harry would totally bang himself.
Tom smiled for photographers and pictures kept being taken with a blinding flash. He didn't
look one bit affected by the awkward morning. Harry didn't expect to wake up in Tom
Riddle's arms again. He figured the man would be sleeping in his own room, but it turned out
Riddle took sleeping by his spouse's side very seriously. Harry just hoped he would be long
gone before Riddle made any other advances.
"Mr Riddle," everyone kept calling Riddle's name even though they were more interested in
capturing pictures of Harry.
The orphanage looked nice. It seemed the Ministry had spent quite a lot of money on the
project. It looked somehow better than Hogwarts. The rooms were large and the common
areas were cosy and spacious. There was a lot of land allocated for gardening and outdoor
activities that magical children could use to practice their magic while away from school.
Harry looked around curiously. There were already house-elves working in the kitchens and
were responsible for the upkeep, but Ministry-employed staff would be available as soon as
the children started relocating to the orphanage.
It was all good if only the idea behind it wasn't disgusting. Harry hated that he couldn't tell
Riddle to shove it. It was appalling that he thought he could steal children from their Muggle
parents and raise them like orphans. A wizarding orphanage was needed, but not for children
whose parents were actually alive.
"Mr Riddle do you agree with your Minister husband's politics?" someone yelled and Harry
realised that they were speaking to him.
"I..." he mumbled, looking around confused as Riddle stiffened next to him. "I think having a
place for children who don't have families is important. All children should have a place they
can call home, somewhere safe and nice."
Riddle looked down at him with mild confusion. Harry gulped and stared at the crowd. He
could do this. Just a little bit, and he would get his wand back.
The opening ceremony was more like a party after the initial meet and greet with the press.
High-ranking Ministry officials, the crème de la crème of the wizarding society, purebloods
with seats in the Wizengamot as well as diplomats and dignitaries from foreign governments
were all present, having drinks, chatting with each other.
"Sweetheart, you look stunning as always," his mother gushed as she and his father
approached them. "The opening ceremony was heartwarming, Tom."
Harry would have rolled his eyes if he didn't dread dealing with more useless chatter from
Riddle and his parents.
"Baby," his father pulled him into his arms. "You are prettier than the last time I saw you. Are
you trying to give me a heart attack? If any of these nobodies keep staring at you any longer
your father is going to curse someone."
"James," Lily laughed. "He has a husband now to defend his honour."
Yeah, right like Harry needed the arsehole next to him to defend his honour.
"I know," his father grinned, looking at Harry. "But he will always be my little boy."
"I will see you tonight, Tom," James said shaking his son-in-law's hand while pulling him
into a tight embrace. Harry wanted to gag.
After his parents left, Harry stopped paying attention. The guests approached them, greeted
them, congratulated Tom on his amazing achievement and tried to awkwardly engage Harry
in conversation while staring at him with immense interest.
"Minister Riddle," a man greeted them with a self-assured, wild smile, approaching them
quickly. "Amazing undertaking. My congratulations."
"Thank you, Mr Grindelwald," Riddle said with a tight smile. "This is just the beginning.
Wizarding society needs an urgent infrastructure update. It seems everyone has been quite
content with the archaic state of affairs for a long time."
"Yes," Grindelwald nodded with a grimace. "It must be that fresh Muggle perspective you are
bringing to the table. We should certainly consider having Muggle-born wizards at the
International Confederation of Wizards. It's great that you are not forgetting where you came
from."
The pleasant smile didn't leave Riddle's face, but Harry could tell that magic was brimming at
his fingertips and if there was no one around, curses would be hurled at the man. Grindelwald
for his part looked much younger and better and apparently wasn't locked up in prison. He
was perhaps in his late 50s and looked quite smug about something, irritating Harry.
"Were you born this condescending or did you take special lessons?" Harry snarked, not
being able to keep his mouth shut. "If you are on an official business from the International
Confederation of Wizards or whatever, maybe you should learn some tact and diplomatic
prudence handling the head of the government."
Riddle stared at him with wide eyes, in complete disbelief as if Harry had just transfigured
his own leg into a cake and had taken a bite off of it.
"Harry," Riddle quelled him with a look but didn't sound annoyed at all. Harry could tell he
was amused.
"You must be Harry Potter," Grindelwald said with a bright smile, staring at him with hungry
curiosity. "I can see why my son speaks of you all the time. You are feisty and exquisite."
"You should work on your compliments," Harry rolled his eyes. "Because-"
"Harry," Harry's heart fluttered as he heard the familiar voice of his professor. Dumbledore
looked much younger too around the same age as Grindelwald and was dressed in modest
robes. "So glad to see you. How have you been?"
"Professor," Harry mumbled still shocked. "I am glad to see you too."
"This is impressive. Congratulations, Tom," the man who still had the auburn streaks in his
hair turned to smile at Riddle. "We may not agree on the definition of the word orphan, but I
am glad that there is now a place the wizarding children can call home before they start
Hogwarts."
"Ministry is hoping to coordinate the education at the orphanage with Hogwarts," Tom said
with a polite but strained smile. "We are hoping to work together on this and have the best
pre-Hogwarts curriculums."
Dumbledore nodded and then turned to Grindelwald. "Gellert," he sighed with a grimace. "I
wasn't aware that you would be back in Britain."
"It was a last-minute decision," the man smiled cheerfully. "Your nephew asked me to come."
"Oh, you didn't know he was writing to me," Grindelwald grinned. "Of course, he does,
Albus. I am his father."
"We had an agreement," Dumbledore sighed, not letting the other man goad him into a burst
of anger. "He is not your son. He is my sister's son, and I am taking care of him."
"This is not the place for this, Albus," Grindelwald grumbled, looking around. "You can't tell
a grown man he can't write to his father, and you can't hold this forever against me. It was
your sister's wish not mine. I only ever wanted a child I could raise with you."
"Let's go," Albus pulled Grindelwald away. "Harry nice seeing you again, sweetheart. Tom,
we will see each other later."
"What was that about?" Harry said confused. "Grindelwald having a son, that one's new."
Tom glared at him but didn't say anything. Harry shook his head. It wasn't like he cared either
way. He was going to get his wand soon, then apparate away and obtain a new wand and then
leave all of this nonsense behind.
The day started stretching into boring small talk and people trying to take pictures with Harry
for whatever reason.
Tom stared at Harry, hiding his growing suspicion. Something was wrong with him or the
brat was so shameless and brazen that he was simply lying about not knowing who Gellert's
son was. Grindelwald's son, who bore his father's name, was Albus Dumbledore's ward and
nephew. Tom had heard rumours that Albus and Gellert were lovers but broke up after the
incident with Ariana Dumbledore. Gellert had a child with his lover's sister, and she died
shortly after the birth.
Tom wrinkled his nose in disgust just thinking about it. Gellert Jr was two years younger than
Tom. He was sorted into Gryffindor house, and he remembered the asshole dating Harry at
school. James Potter would have never agreed to have his son marry Grindelwald's spawn.
He would never want the other man's influence and even more so because Potter was a
traditionalist and found Gellert's extramarital children to be a disgrace.
And now, the princess was pretending he didn't even know that Gellert had a son when he
spent all his waking hours probably daydreaming about the git.
Although, that wasn't the only strange behaviour today. The way he spoke with Gellert
seemed out of character too. He was acting off since the Ministry party where he had thrown
himself into Nott's arms. Malfoy said something about Nott putting some kind of draught into
Harry's drink. It couldn't be that. It has been days.
Maybe he broke up with Gellert's son and was now using Tom to be nasty to the man's father.
Tom wouldn't be surprised. The Potter heir could be extremely catty and show his claws if he
felt wronged.
He was holding Harry's hand, but the brat suddenly stilled, moved his hand away and started
looking around with mild panic. Tom grabbed his wrist and felt his husband's goose-bumped
flesh.
The noise of the explosion startled everyone as strange men suddenly started apparating and
blasting spells and curses around. Smoke, dust and fumes spread over the area. Part of the
building was damaged and people were trapped under the rubble. Tom pulled Harry closer
and pulled out his wand. He cast a protective shield over Harry and moved forward to disarm
and stop the attackers. They were slinging curses indiscriminately.
"Wait here," Tom instructed Harry and rushed forward to lift the rubble and help people who
were trapped inside.
As he was levitating the stones and the rubble, one of the attackers tried to cast a slicing curse
at him.
"Confringo," Tom cast the blasting spell without using his wand as he was using it to get rid
of the rubble. The spell hit the man on the leg and tore it apart.
Casting two spells at the same time was not something anyone else could do, so this idiot
thought he could take advantage of the fact that the Minister of Magic was trying to save the
lives of the wizards trapped under the debris. His eyes turned towards Harry who was looking
around slightly lost and still confined to the protective shield Tom had cast. It was a modified
one and intended to trap someone. He didn't have time to babysit him but needed him safe.
"Expulso," he whispered when he saw someone approaching his husband fast. The blue light
shuttered the man into pieces.
He was going to fire every Auror if they were this slow to properly respond to an attack like
this. The attackers were moving randomly, it didn't seem like they had any particular target in
mind until one of them spotted Harry. Tom lifted the last chunks of wreckage, allowing for
the injured wizards to be pulled out before a ward spell was cast, creating a strong magic wall
between him and Harry.
He rushed towards the Potter heir but was blocked by various attackers. They engaged in a
duel with him and were defeated quickly, but a swarm of them kept coming and occupying
him long enough that the protective shield he had cast around Harry faded.
"Shit," he slammed his hand against the wards, bursts of magic trying to crack it open and
shatter it as he continued throwing off anyone who engaged in a fight with him. "Harry!"
Tom had never panicked. He was always capable of defending himself, but he had never
considered that being married and having a husband would make him vulnerable. Harry was
a liability. He slammed his wand against the wards muttering spells, trying to shatter the wall
of magic separating the two.
Tom's heart was beating faster. He would be able to shatter the wards. It was a matter of time.
He wasn't sure he had enough of it before these men would either kill the airheaded brat or
kidnap him.
"Stupify," he mumbled, knocking down the mob of men still coming at him.
He watched as the men walked up to Harry, eyes wide and blood rushing to his ears as he
continued blasting the wards with powerful magic, hoping to get to Harry before the men did.
"Imperio," the man said with a smile, throwing an unforgivable curse. "Come here, sweety."
Tom watched as Harry slowly moved towards the men. There were five of them, and none of
them bothered hiding their faces. Tom would find them no matter what. They would beg for
death once he was done with him.
"Harry, stop," he tried, but the ward separating them was numbing any of his compulsion
efforts. "Shit."
He cast an entrail removing curse at someone in anger and the man dropped down like a
marionette.
Harry walked slowly, Tom couldn't see his face as he was facing away from him, but he knew
those pretty emerald eyes were probably glazed. Harry stretched his hand, his palm open and
waiting, and as he was about to be just a step away from the men, a piece of metallic bar flew
into his hand, and he caught it with an agility of the Quidditch seeker.
Tom stared bewildered, his heart still beating fast in his chest as his pretty socialite husband
who barely held his own teaspoon swung a piece of reinforced steel bar across a man's face
who was twice his size, knocking his bloody teeth out and when the man fell onto the ground,
Harry didn't lose a second as he commanded this man's wand into his hand with a wandless
accio.
"Stupify," he cast the spell knocking down one of the men who recovered first and managed
to point his wand at Harry.
Another tried to cast a stunner at Harry, but Harry blocked it and cast a series of hexes.
"What are you? Some kind of discount Death Eaters?" he mumbled, battling all three of them
at the same time.
Tom was so confused and out of it that he didn't even notice that more wizards were trying to
attack him and one of them even attempted the killing curse. He would have laughed at them
if he wasn't preoccupied by the fucking sight of his bratty husband, battling three skilled
mercenaries at the same time.
Those weren't even some innocent spells. Some of the spells his dear little husband with
Alluran blood in his veins was casting were outside of Auror training and were only for the
special wizarding units for battling dark wizards. Tom stared and couldn't look away.
More men joined and Harry was now fighting against at least a dozen. The brat suddenly
pointed the wand at himself and the men stopped for a short moment confused until the spell
left Harry's lips.
"Gemino," he mumbled to everyone's confusion and rushed towards the group, allowing them
to brush against himself and creating multiple copies of Harrys. Tom had never seen that
spell being used that way. Several Harrys were standing and staring at the men who were now
unsure which one was the real one.
"Oppugno," Harry whispered and then all the copies of Harry immediately attacked the men.
Harry rushed towards the ward where Tom was standing fighting against whatever
insignificant wizard was trying to hold him back while the others were trying to kidnap his
husband who clearly was not what anyone expected.
"What is going on?" he asked breathless and to Tom's absolute horror, a little too excited.
"Who are these people?"
Tom pointed his wand one final time against the magic wall and blasted it open. The ward
shuttered and dissolved, allowing him to grab Harry's hand.
"I don't know who they are," he said. "But they clearly want you. Let's go."
"Ardeo," Harry cast when someone jumped right in front of them, the man's clothes caught
on fire immediately.
"Are you okay?" Tom asked as they moved out of the line of fire. The Aurors had finally
joined and were fighting and seizing the attackers. "You are not injured, right."
"I am fine," Harry mumbled then added with an amused snort. "I have seen worse. Some
noseless bastard was trying to kill me all my life, and he was much better at magic than these
morons. Casting an imperio when he would barely hold his bloody wand, give me a break. I
guess it doesn't take much these days to become a dark wizard."
He might have been physically fine, but Tom was sure a spell or two had messed up his
husband's brain.
Spells were being fired right and left and then all of a sudden someone cast a blasting curse at
Tom. He was so distracted by his thoughts about his husband's fighting skills that he had
forgotten they were in the middle of an active combat situation. Harry pulled him away, and
he felt his body apparating.
"Shit! Almost got spliced," Harry sighed as they both dropped right in the middle of Muggle
London.
Tom stared still confused. There must have been some kind of rational explanation.
"It seems they were very interested in killing you," Harry mused. "We can't go back there.
Your ministry officials were awfully slow at showing up and the Aurors were subpar at
dueling. Merlin knows, you might have some naysayers in your government who organised
this attack, Mr Minister."
Tom clutched his wand. Who the fuck was this man wearing his husband's bloody face?
"Let's go," he said, holding Tom's hand and pulling him away from the curious crowd. "You
need to find out who was behind this before we can even go back home."
"I need to," Tom stopped, sighing. "I need to go back. People need help. I need to issue a
special ordinance and investigate the attack."
"Well, if you haven't noticed you were the only one fighting those assholes and helping
people get out from underneath the rubble," Harry rolled his eyes. "You can't go back,
because these people clearly had orders to kill you and kidnap me."
Tom allowed this stranger to drag him away. This man wasn't his husband, but Tom was
confident he would be able to defend himself if he was being led into a trap. He wondered if
it was a polyjuice potion, although he had never heard of any of those lasting too long. He
must have been drinking them periodically.
"We should be able to stay here, and you can call someone you trust from the Ministry to
report on the situation," Harry said. "Can we have a room for two?"
Tom had never been to a Muggle hotel. Muggles sure knew how to build clean, cosy spaces.
It certainly felt cosier than the wizarding hotels, not that he had much to compare it to. He
stared in disbelief as his Muggle-hating husband handed the Muggle some money and
grabbed the keys they provided.
"You know," he said with a sad smile. "I have never thought that I would see you helping
people."
Tom didn't respond. He was waiting. They walked into a nicely furnished large room, and the
moment they set foot in, Harry rushed to enchant the place with protective spells. Some of
them were spells even Tom was unfamiliar with. Tom watched silently, waiting for a perfect
moment.
Harry or whoever this truly was, dropped his wand on the bed and rubbed his eyes, looking
tired.
Tom started patting him down trying to find a bottle of polyjuice potion hidden somewhere.
"I don't know who you are," he said, searching in the pockets and patting down his husband's
delicate legs. "But you are not my husband. Where are you hiding the polyjuice potion?"
"If you are implying I am not Harry Potter," Harry said still frozen in place. "Then you are
wrong, but it's true that I am not your bloody husband."
"You are not Harry Potter," Tom insisted. "Are you going to claim I just didn't know you well
enough?"
He patted everywhere and didn't find anything. "I will just wait until it wears off," he said.
"It's not like you are going to wear his face longer than thirty minutes without the potion."
"You are out of your mind," Harry said. "Are you going to leave me immobilised for half an
hour? I already told you I am Harry Potter. So you may as well leave me like this forever."
"My husband doesn't even know how to hold his wand, let alone do a wordless, wandless
magic," Tom snorted. "You should have learned about him more if you wanted to fool
everyone."
"I am curious what was your end goal," Tom said, staring at the stranger. "What have you
done with my husband?"
"I don't know what happened to your husband," he said and Tom's heart started beating faster.
"I guess whoever you married is dead. But if you are hoping that I am using a polyjuice
potion and I am not Harry Potter then I will have to disappoint you. You could do a blood
magic test with my parents and confirm my identity."
Barty told him that Harry was different not like people talked of him. But Tom had seen with
his eyes his pretty husband's bigotry and prejudices, his incompetence and childishness. The
potion wasn't wearing off, and this man looked like his husband, but Tom knew it was a
different person.
Does anyone want Tom to find out that Harry is from another dimension or you prefer of
he falls in love without knowing. :D
Chapter 6
Chapter Notes
❤️
OMG, thank you so much for all the love you have showed for this one. Your comments
are motivating me so much.
Waiting did not culminate in any results. Tom stared at the familiar face of his delicate
husband, whose ethereal features did not morph or transform into the face of another person.
His beautiful countenance and his slim, elegant body remained the same as minutes ticked by,
and Tom knew that no magic in the world had this kind of strength.
The hesitant knock on the door interrupted the silent glaring match he was engaged in with
his supposed husband. Tom hurried out of the bedroom towards the foyer of the suite and
opened the door. Barty Crouch Jr fell to his knees, seeing him, and cradled his wand,
exhaling with relief.
"My Lord," he cried. "I was so worried when I couldn't find you in the crowd. After you
helped free the trapped people, you suddenly disappeared, and I feared the worst. I wasn't
even sure the call was from you, but I came as fast as I could."
"Did you bring what I asked?" Tom leaned over to help the man to his feet, resisting the urge
to roll his eyes at the melodramatic display.
"Yes," Barty pulled out vials of truth serum from the inner pocket of his robes. "But what is
happening? Where is Harry? His parents were looking for him. Is he alright?"
"He is fine," Tom said firmly. "Did you tell his parents that you were coming to see me?"
"No, My Lord," Barty stammered. "I followed your instructions and did not tell a soul."
"Are Harry's parents alright?" Tom asked, clearing his throat, uncomfortable that despite
everything he cared to know they were safe.
"Yes, My Lord," Barty nodded. "Both Lord and Lady Potter are fine, but they seemed very
anxious that you were missing. Lord Potter had brought in private security from France to
look for you. He was unhappy with the Aurors."
Tom sighed. He was going to fire so many people once he was back. Either this was extreme
incompetence or willful negligence, and in either case, he didn't wish to have these people
work for his cabinet.
"I have something to take care of right now," he told Barty, gripping the Veritaserum tightly.
"Once I am done, we will go straight to the Ministry and call for an emergency meeting. Wait
outside."
"Yes, My Lo—" Tom shut the door before Barty could finish.
He fiddled with the vials as he walked back into the bedroom where the man bearing the
pretty face of his husband was frozen and bound by his magic. Harry craned his dainty neck
and glared at him when he noticed Tom approaching him with intent. Tom opened the vial;
the cork came out with a loud pop. Harry's eyes widened as he realised that Tom was
planning to feed him some kind of potion.
He pressed his lips together, resisting. Tom could feel Harry's magic fighting and flaring.
"Mhhm," he struggled as Tom forced the liquid into his mouth, gripping Harry's pretty neck
with bruising strength, forcing him to part his lips. He held him and made sure that he
swallowed the truth serum.
"Fuck you, Riddle," Harry coughed when Tom let him go.
The crystalline chandelier hanging from the high ceiling fell, shattering into a million pieces.
Tom managed to step aside before he was crushed underneath the weight of the enormous
contraption. Even with the immobilisation magic, binding him in place, this imposter had an
incredible amount of power—with no wand and uttered spells, he had disassembled the
chandelier and dropped it down with the force of a sledgehammer. Tom would have
marvelled, impressed, if it wasn't for the fact that this stranger was his enemy right now, and
he had no idea what his intentions were.
Tom waved his wand lightly, and the chandelier pieces assembled back together, floated up
and got attached to the ceiling, leaving no trace of what just happened behind. Harry scowled,
and Tom watched him. Veritaserum acted quickly. He knew that some witches and wizards
could demonstrate remarkable resistance to the serum, but this one was brewed by him and
had a special ingredient that rendered null almost all immunity, especially one obtained
through truth serum antidotes.
"Harry Potter."
"What name were you born with?" Tom closed his eyes, trying to sort his disarranged
thoughts. The limitation of the truth serum was that people could circumvent the truth by
giving truthful responses that were true only in the mind of the person. This man was Harry
Potter right now, so he could say that he was, but Tom needed him to confess who was hiding
behind the shell of his pureblood socialite husband.
"Are you impersonating Harry Potter?" Tom tried again, hoping to catch the slightest lie, the
smallest misstep. He had always been good at reading people and forcing them to hand over
their secrets. Everyone slipped, everyone failed, and nobody could ever leave his presence
without telling him what he wanted to know.
Harry, or whoever this was, was struggling. Tom could tell from the expression on his face
that he didn't want to answer.
"No," he forced the word out to Tom's surprise. "Let me fucking go."
Tom was baffled, and he was out of questions to ask. This didn't seem right. This was
complete nonsense. He gulped and started pacing. It was one thing to make a very powerful
Polyjuice potion and for the effects of it to last very long, but it was absurd that he could
resist the advanced Veritaserum Tom had brewed.
Wizards powerful enough to brew Polyjuice potion so potent that could last for hours weren't
unheard of, but his husband wasn't one of them. And Tom had no idea who this person was,
wearing his husband's face. On the other hand, if this was someone powerful enough to brew
a potion like that, wouldn't he also have a natural Occlumency gift to resist the effects of any
Veritaserum, including the one Tom had made?
Tom was worried. He was in the dark, trying to navigate while completely blind. He had no
idea what was going on and thus didn't know what to do. He didn't know the motive of a
person trying to impersonate his husband. If someone was trying to impersonate Harry Potter,
why would they do such a poor job at it? Why wouldn't they get enough intel to impersonate
him believably? The contradictions were all there—if this was a powerful wizard with an
unknown agenda who was able to produce the most powerful Polyjuice potion lasting hours,
why wouldn't he do a better job at impersonating its target? And what could he possibly gain
from this?
"Aren't you fucking tired of this nonsense? Just let me go," Harry spat.
Tom looked at him again. Curiously. Inquisitively. Excessively. He assessed him with the
gaze of a meticulous man who always had control of his subjects. Tom could keep him here.
He was a patient man. He could stay here, watch him for hours. For a whole day. He doubted
any Polyjuice potion would last so long. It would defy the laws of Magic.
No, this man, glaring at him, had a personality; thoughts of his own. He wasn't trying to
emulate Tom's husband. It was like he didn't even care to pretend. Tom started circling him,
moving around with a distrustful and wary stance; his eyes trained on the imposter's body,
looking for a clue.
"You said you were not my husband. What did you mean by that?"
Harry's glare deepened.
"Just exactly what I fucking said. I never fucking married you," his pretty face scrunched up
into a scowl. "How long am I going to stand here? What are you trying to get out of this?"
Tom walked up to him and grabbed Harry's hand. His skin was so smooth and soft, and his
fingers were bony and fragile. Impersonation through spells, potions and charms allowed a
person to take on the physical form of another, but one could never replicate the magical
vows, ties and bonds that person held. One could look like someone but one would not inherit
the bonds and magical vows that person had taken. Tom and Harry were married, sworn to an
unbreakable, magical bond.
Tom undid the cuffs of Harry's shirt, then he took off his own jacket, unbuttoned the rest and
rolled up his sleeves. Harry stared at Tom incredulously, watching him with utter horror as he
peeled away the soft fabric covering Harry's skin.
Tom held his hand, just exactly as he did a couple of months ago when they got married. He
flicked his wand over their clasped hands and muttered the incantation. The golden threads of
the magical bond they had sworn to each other crept out and tethered their hands together.
This was an undeniable proof that he had sworn a vow of matrimony to this man.
They reached an impasse. Tom didn't know what this was, but he knew this was not a
Polyjuice potion, a golem or a doppelgänger. This was not a person expertly glamoured to
look like his husband. Someone under a glamour charm wouldn't have the nuptial ties
binding them together as if they had taken blood vows for each other. James Potter, the old
prick, was a traditionalist who wanted them wed in the old ways. So they took a vow of
matrimony through blood magic, tying them to each other forever.
The magical ropes chaining their hands together indicated that he was Harry fucking Potter.
But Tom couldn't believe it.
"So, what is it?" he said, aggravated, "Were you pretending to be an incredibly disgusting
person all this time? And what did change your mind suddenly? Did you get an epiphany?
Were you getting bored of having fun at other people's expense?"
Harry was silent and was watching him, annoyance clear in his eyes.
"I remember you from Hogwarts," Tom continued with a sigh. "You were not bright. This is
nonsense. There must be an explanation for this that makes sense. Are you really going to
claim that you have lived your entire life pretending to be an idiot? You failed all your classes
at school, barely graduated, and only did so thanks to your father's interference. Are you also
trying to tell me that you wanted to kill your godfather with an inept use of magic? Why the
change of heart right now, huh? Do not lie to me."
Harry wasn't answering. He was just staring at him. Defiantly. Like a child who didn't like
being scolded.
Tom never did this to Harry. He was a master Legilimens but had never used his ability on
Harry. He had never tried to read his mind, shuffle through his memories, look through
everything the brat had done. He didn't like Harry, but he owed him the respect of mental
privacy. He had demanded answers, but he had never taken them forcefully. That was about
to change because he wasn't going to allow some imposter to take over his life and do, Merlin
knows what.
Tom muttered the spell and with the force of a master Legilimens pierced through Harry's
mind. And there was nothing; he had hit a brick wall many times, trying to read the minds of
skilled wizards, but this time, it was not a brick wall. No, it was not a wall at all. He just
entered into a dark empty room with nothing in it. Harry didn't block or stop him. He didn't
fight. He let him in easily but his mind was simply empty. There was nothing; there were no
memories and no thoughts. This could be the mind of someone who had been obliviated or
was not really a person—just an empty shell.
Tom was so shocked for a moment, his mind racing to come up with a sound reasoning as to
what the bloody hell this was, but then he felt Harry, pushing at him and drawing him out of
his mind with an unhurried ease of a person who knew that unwanted guests were received in
an empty blank room where Dementors would die from hunger.
"Well, did you find anything interesting?" Harry asked with contempt.
"I did not find anything," Tom admitted but then added with a frown. "But that in itself is
very interesting. Who are you? What are you?"
"I think I am getting tired of answering that question. And, I'm hoping that you are tired of
asking the same question because the answer is going to be the same."
Tom couldn't admit defeat. He couldn't acknowledge that this man was, in fact, his husband.
At least physically he was the same man that Tom had married; his Alluran looks weren't
changing or shifting. The lurne blood was still running through his veins. The magical vows
they had given to each other were still intact. There was something he was hiding, and Tom
wanted to know what it was more than anything in the world. Because no one ever surprised
him like this. It was fascinating.
Harry's fingers were twitching. He was trying to undo the magical binds immobilising him in
place. His magic was feeding his bindings small bursts of energy, gradually destroying the
spell Tom had enveloped him in, freezing his movements. He was letting his magic eat and
devour the magic of his opponent like a swarm of moths would eat threads of wool and silk,
destroying the fabric.
His magic was penetrating the inner structure of Tom's spell and compromising the integrity
of the magical tethers.
He could have just left this bullshit behind and ran away when he had the chance, but part of
him knew that he couldn't just leave without helping. Because for the first time in his life,
Harry had seen a man, a high-ranking Ministry official, help others instead of running for his
life, saving himself. Tom had protected his husband first, casting a protective shield over him
and then he helped the trapped witches and wizards out of the building. Riddle was incredibly
talented and magically powerful, capable of unimaginable feats of magic. Harry's stupid heart
had fluttered.
His stupid, stupid heart had skipped several beats when he realised that the man whose
version in his world was an evil son of a bitch could be a decent person here. And the magic
he had could do so much good. He'd run to Tom to help him without a second thought when
he saw all of those people, rushing towards him, trying to hex him and curse him.
Harry could feel his fingers, the numbness wearing off as magic was slowly setting him free
from his binds. Tom looked confused. Harry didn't blame him. For a moment, he just wanted
to tell him the whole truth. Tell him that even though he was Harry Potter, he was not Harry
Potter from this world but from another one. He dropped the idea, realising it was too risky.
He had already acted thoughtlessly when he had rushed to Tom's side to help instead of
taking the wand, using the opportunity and just running away to live his life.
Now, he was paying for his reckless choice by being petrified, his mind being probed by his
counterpart's arsehole husband who was trying to find out his secrets, interrogating him like
he was some criminal.
If he told anyone, including this man, that he was a version of Harry, two things would
possibly happen. One, most people would think that he was crazy, and Harry feared, the
consequences of such assumptions about him. Considering the way they were treating him,
they probably would lock him up somewhere until he was back to his normal self.
And two, Riddle really didn't seem like he would believe an explanation like that. He was
certain that Harry was not his husband and he was right. But if he learned the truth, Harry had
no idea what he would do. Would he even want his husband back? And what was Harry
supposed to say? Sorry, your husband's dead. That's the only way I could be in this body. He
could get blamed for the death of some stupid airhead that he didn't even cause.
Did he really want to get himself in so much trouble just to be truthful? He didn't lie, he
wasn't Tom's husband but he was Harry Potter. And that was not a lie. Just because he didn't
want to lie, it didn't mean that he was going to tell the truth.
His goal, after all, was to leave this place and go as far as possible. It wasn't like Harry had
any family here. His so-called father was not someone he would miss. Lily Potter even in this
world was a sweet woman, but she was not his mother. None of his people were his friends
and family. He was alone here. Worse, the very idea that they looked like his family and
friends while his actual friends and family were dead made Harry want to be away from them
as far as possible.
Part of Harry knew that he couldn't just stay here. He needed to leave.
Merlin knew, what this man would do if he knew that Harry was occupying the body of his
spoiled, pretty husband. With all the cheating and scandals, Harry doubted most witches and
wizards would find the marriage with him amenable. But this Tom was all about rules, all
about his image and all about how people perceived him.
There was a lot more common between this version of Tom and the one from Dumbledore's
memories, than this version of Tom and Voldemort. The one from Dumbledore's memories
also cared about his image to some degree which was why finding out about his Muggle
father he had discarded his own name and had picked a fucking stupid, bullshit name as a
replacement that sounded like a three-year-old came up with that thing.
This Tom Riddle embraced his Muggle identity. He took the other end of the story about his
personhood. He was the Muggle-born Minister of Magic.
From what Harry understood, this world's Harry was one of the most desired wizards in
Britain, and yes, he could see himself in the mirror. He looked like a total babe. Perhaps
whatever strange heritage or blood or whatever it was, had made him exceptionally attractive.
It looked like Harry's father had a lot of influence, his mother was also a pureblood witch and
his grandparents were a bunch of rich people too.
So, from a personal image standpoint, Tom was on the top. He was the Minister of Magic,
magically incredibly gifted, married to the most desired wizard in Britain who was an only
child and an heir to a massive wealth of both of his parents. Only morons couldn't see how
powerful Tom fucking Riddle was. He did care about this image and this version of him that
cared about his image would stay married to Harry. He would not take kindly to anything that
would jeopardise his status.
Harry didn't want to face the consequences. All he needed to do was to keep his mouth shut
and leave as soon as possible.
The binds were loosening. Tom wasn't aware of what Harry was doing, and Harry was gleeful
in his own mind. He was excited. He was undoing the last knots of the magic tightening his
body in chains. Harry was finally able to dissolve the magical ribbons immobilising him and
quickly dashed forward with his palm open, mumbling an Accio for his wand still on the bed.
As soon as the wand was in his hands, Harry cast a quick hex, sending it Tom's way. Riddle
managed to lift a protective shield, and he looked at Harry surprised, but somewhat intrigued.
Was this person a fucking psycho? Was he actually interested in getting hexed? Harry started
flinging a rapid storm of hexes and curses—nothing fatal, nothing too dangerous. He just
needed to find an opening and leave. But Tom was responding back to them, and Harry could
feel that his stance was familiar. This was something he knew. The way this man was fighting
was dirty. He was skilled. It was as if he really, really did this before.
Given that Tom was the Minister of Magic, he shouldn't have had a lot of experience duelling
like he was some kind of back-alley criminal or some kind of a dark wizard, building an
army. But Tom was skilled. He was not just an academic but someone with actual, real-life
experience. That's how he fought.
Harry chose to simply jump out of the way of some of the curses, letting them smash against
other surfaces and tear into pieces the lamps and chandeliers in a room. He cast a blasting
spell and hit against the Riddle's protective shield. The protective shield ricocheted the spell
and it flew off and hit the wall behind Riddle, leaving a large crack on the wall.
The room was a mess a couple of minutes later. Everything was destroyed.
Harry was panting, feeling alive. So fucking alive, it was gross! After being treated like a
bloody fucking housewife for all hours he had been in this place, fighting was making him
feel alive. It was making him feel himself.
Tom was breathing hard too. His pupils were dilated. It looked like he was enjoying himself.
So, who the hell was Harry not to deliver?
Harry decided to go with some of the creative spells he and Hermione came up with, running
around, trying to avoid Death Eaters. A cloud of smoke seeped out of his wand and bled into
the room. Tom stared at him with interest. The smoke spread and started blocking everything.
Tom cast a Lumos or some other variation of it because it was quite bright.
The smoke started eating the light. Harry realised that this was an excellent opportunity to
finally flee. But he was an idiot and was enjoying this far too much. So instead of running
away like a normal person would, he just stayed there and watched as the magical smoke
started eating away the light coming from Tom's wand.
Taking advantage of Tom's distraction, he cast another spell, solidifying the smoke into a
deformed animal. The creature took the shape and the form of the smoke and roared. Riddle
looked surprised and intrigued although quite honestly, Harry couldn't tell what the man was
thinking but it didn't look like he was put off by Harry's creation.
Riddle cast a couple of slicing hexes when the creature tried to attack him, and the body of
the magical smoke beast fell down into the ground with a loud thud. Instead of evaporating,
the beast remained on the ground in its corporeal form, and blood oozed out of it.
Harry wasn't sure why they were not fighting. He could tell that Riddle was assessing him.
The man's wand was lowered, but it was not in a position where he couldn't cast another spell
or attack Harry. He was just watching him with curiosity, his eyes shining with mad interest.
Riddle started circling the beast and Harry who was facing him, clutching his wand in his
hand firmly, waiting for a response. A smile, a creepy one, broke on Tom's handsome face.
"Interesting," he said. "Your magic. You were able to create a corporal magical creature, and
it didn't disintegrate as soon as it died."
"Well, I'm not the first one or the last one to be able to do that," Harry grumbled.
Riddle smirked. The room was destroyed; chandeliers, lamps and vases were broken. There
were broken shards of glass everywhere. Some of the spells had hit the bed, and there was a
huge burn stain in the middle of it.
The Muggle automatic fire extinguisher installed on the ceiling had activated due to the
smoke, and the water was drizzling down, drenching the place. Someone from the Muggle
building regulations should have given a visit to this place to check the hotel's water systems
because if this was a real fire, the trickling water wouldn't have been much help, Harry
thought amusingly.
They were watching each other, waiting for the other one to attack first. Harry was always
impatient. He wished he had the virtue of patience but he didn't, so he got too sick of waiting
and started casting a series of curses at Riddle.
Harry was so quick that Tom was so stunned for a moment that he didn't register that one of
the curses hit the side of his arm. The fabric of his jacket tore, and the blood started dripping
down. The spell didn't do any real damage—it was barely a scrap, but Harry wasn't looking
to maim Riddle. He just wanted to create enough chaos and destruction to swiftly escape.
Riddle sent a couple of hexes his way. Harry didn't recognise any of them. One of them
bounced off of Harry's shield and spread over the floor, the wood started rotting.
The fight was getting more intense. They were both breathing hard.
Harry decided that this was the end of it. He needed to fucking leave. At the same time,
something inside him was just trying to keep him there. It was telling him to continue until
only one of them was standing. He just wanted to destroy this arsehole who was treating him
like he was some kind of little boy that needed permission to do anything.
Harry cast a barrier spell and then rushed forward to get close to Tom. At this point, he was
not above playing dirty. Harry smashed against Riddle, and they both fell to the ground.
Harry's wand fell and rolled away. He realised his idiocy too late. He lunged instead at Riddle
and tried to wrestle the man's wand out of his hand but Riddle was much bigger and stronger.
So, he was able to overpower Harry. He grabbed Harr's arms and pushed them down against
the rough carpet on the floor, holding them over his head.
Riddle's eyes were bright and gleeful and his grip was bruising. It was like he was very happy
that he had won. If he was a four-year-old, he would have screamed, "I won!" and demanded
for Harry to surrender. Harry couldn't surrender. He looked at Riddle with absolute fury and
rage in his eyes and kicked him on the side of his back.
Riddle was startled by the sudden kick and loosened his grip on Harry's wrists enough for
Harry to push him off and manage to crawl out over the floor towards the bed. But Riddle
followed him, grabbed him and lifting him up, smashed him against the wall. Harry grunted
in pain. Breathing hard they stared into each other's eyes.
Their faces were so close that Harry couldn't think. His mind was cloudy, and it felt like he
was running out of light in his eyes. Harry was a fucking moron that's why without thinking,
he smashed his lips against Riddle's and kissed him out of the blue like a madman who had
lost his bloody mind.
Harry genuinely was going to blame this on the adrenaline and all the other hormones that
were being secreted into the system, making his mind cloudy and hot and stupid. But being
so close to the good-looking man after an intense fight made his rationality fly out of his
window. Riddle's hands were soft and rough at the same time, and he was warm.
It felt like it could jump out of his chest at any moment. He could feel Tom's hands roughly
tracing his face. And the kiss was not soft, sweet, or even normal. It was crazy and angry, and
teeth were involved.
Harry was pretty sure he bit Riddle's tongue or maybe it was his lips. He couldn't tell. He was
too busy enjoying the feeling of the intense, passionate kiss. He could feel Riddle's hands
wandering over his body. He realised that he actually could touch Riddle too so he pressed
his palms against the man's firm chest, felt his shoulder blades, moved his hands over
Riddle's back and kissed him like a demented lunatic.
It really felt like Riddle was kissing him like a Dementor. It was as if he was trying to suck
the soul out of Harry, but Harry was enjoying this. His fingers were clasped around Riddle's
shirt. He wasn't sure why, but he was unbuttoning the man's shirt, trying to take it off, not
really understanding what he was doing. He had no clue or any experience. He was simply
following his instincts.
His brain cells were fumbling about, any rational thought had left his mind, and it was as if
everything was being run by a bunch of overzealous Pixies at this point.
"My Lord?" an agitated voice reached them from the side of the room. At first, Harry didn't
want to pay attention to it but then the startled scream made both him and Tom stop. They
pulled away from each other reluctantly, panting and breathless, lips red and swollen and
stared daggers at Barty Crouch Jr, who was standing in the corner with his wand in his hand.
The undersecretary was throwing horrified glances towards the destroyed room and looking
at the Minister and his husband in panic. His face completely flushed when he noticed the
state they were in.
Barty's eyes were pinned on Tom's hands gripping Harry tightly against him. It almost felt
like the Minister was a niffler, trying to protect his treasure.
Barty looked embarrassed and didn't dare to stare at the Minister's husband. He looked at the
room and waved his hands awkwardly.
"I heard a noise," he confessed.
Harry wiped his mouth and started buttoning his shirt quickly, looking away to avoid making
eye contact with Crouch.
Fuck this bullshit. What the fuck was wrong with him? Harry was an idiot.
Riddle looked completely unperturbed and frowned at Barty with mild annoyance.
"Please wait outside," he commanded in an unaffected tone. Crouch shrunk under his gaze
and then ran his tail between his legs.
"Epiesky," Riddle murmured, holding Harry's chin and examining him for any damage. Harry
slapped his hand away and scowled. "Is this the infamous Black madness I am witnessing in
progress?"
"Worry about the madness of your family," Harry spat, trying to fasten all the buttons of his
shirt.
The amusement vanished from Tom's eyes, but he continued murmuring spells to heal any
bruises or scrapes on Harry's body.
"I know you are hiding something," Tom whispered into his ear softly. "I intend to find out
what it is."
"For Merlin's sake," Harry groaned. "Not this rubbish again. If you don't trust me, do some
kind of DNA test."
"Oh, come on," Harry shook his head. "It's not like you don't know what a DNA test is."
"Oh, I know what a DNA test is," Tom said, lowering his voice and bringing his face close to
Harry's lips. "The problem is that you know what it is, princess."
Harry rolled his eyes. Did he think he was insulting Harry or something? Tosser!
"We need to go to the Ministry," he told Harry, completing his examination. "You are coming
with me. I need to keep an eye on you. Besides, your parents are looking for you."
"My parents?" Harry sassed. "I thought I was impersonating your husband."
"You are my husband," Tom narrowed his eyes. "You have our marital bonds. And I will find
out what happened to your mind."
Riddle just looked at him with an intense look, but didn't deign him with an answer. Harry
knew that Riddle was concocting some wild theory in his head. Harry had lost his chance to
escape. Riddle held his arm and pulled him out of the room.
"Barty, take care of the room," he told Crouch. "We don't want Muggles to find the room in
that state. We are heading to the Ministry. As soon as you are done, come to the Ministry."
"Yes, Minister, My Lord," Barty nodded eagerly, shying a glance at Harry. Harry gave him an
awkward smile and Barty's face lit up.
People were staring, mostly at him. They were giving respectful bows to the Minister in
greeting, but they were openly and without shame leering at him.
"Why are they ogling me so blatantly?" he muttered out loud, getting fed up with the
lecherous behaviour of these people.
Tom blinked his eyes, slightly startled by the question, and pulled him a tad closer.
"Does it bother me?" Harry grunted incredulously. "Are you bloody serious? Why would I
want some creepy geezers staring at me like I am a piece of meat?"
"Don't be bloody ridiculous," Harry rolled his eyes. "I want all of these wankers to watch
their fucking step before I vanish their stupid eyeballs."
"It appears your new personality comes with a vulgar mouth and proclivity for violence,"
Tom commented.
Harry narrowed his eyes. Tom smiled at him, his lips curling into a delightful smirk then he
lifted his head and looked at the crowd rushing through the atrium into their offices.
"Mr Rancorn, watch your step," Tom drawled, voice having lilts of amusement.
The man shuffled about, lifted his head and stared at them.
"Sorry, thank you, Minister," he stammered, trying to get back on his feet.
Harry scowled.
"Don't embellish your penchant for inflicting punishments with pretences of sincere
intentions," Harry shook his head. "You were pissed he was disrespecting you."
"He was disrespecting me," Tom stated, tilting his head to watch Harry. "You are my wedded
husband, and he was leering at you in my presence. If I were to punish him for his
transgression, he would lose his eyes."
"Merlin, you are so bloody benevolent. What have we done to deserve your mercy?" Harry
snarked.
"That was a figure of speech," Harry mumbled, looking down at his hands as if a little
embarrassed.
"I do not waste my breath on idle threats," Riddle said amused. "If I decide to punish him or
anyone for that matter, they will receive their punishment."
"Why would it be disrespectful towards you?" Harry asked him, baffled. "It's not like they are
looking at you."
"Generally, both in the Muggle and wizarding world it is disrespectful and tactless to show an
open sexual interest in someone's intended especially in that person's presence. Are you being
deliberately obtuse, or have you landed here from another planet?"
They moved through the atrium and took the lift to level one where the Minister's office was.
There was a crazy rush of witches and wizards moving from one floor to the other.
"Minister Riddle," Harry stared at Hermione who was rushing towards them with a stack of
Daily Prophet in her hands, ignoring him completely like he didn't exist. "Thank Merlin, you
are here."
"Ms Granger," Tom greeted, moving to his office and dragging Harry along with him. "Brief
me on the situation."
"The Auror department is working on catching the terrorists," she said walking along with
them, her crazy curls bouncing as she moved. "There are no deaths, but many have been
injured. They are currently at Saint Mungo's Hospital, getting treatments. Some of the
attackers have been caught and are being interrogated. I have prepared a statement for you.
The Daily Prophet-"
"Um, Auror Weasley," Hermione said. Harry's heart skipped a beat hearing Weasley's name.
Harry glanced at the newspaper title, "Minister Riddle's ambitious plan to integrate Muggle-
borns into wizarding society fails tremendously as new wizarding orphanage gets toppled
down. Will Minister Riddle be able to recover from this?"
"Please have Mr Malfoy come to my office and Mr Weasley as well, as soon as he is done
with the interrogation," Tom told her, and Hermione started taking notes.
"Your father-in-law was here earlier," she said, closing down the parchment roll. "He
requested to be notified as soon as you were back or we got any information on you."
"Yes, please contact him, Ms Granger," Tom told her, staring at the newspapers with
irritation.
Harry was watching Hermione with wide eyes. She was ignoring him. Purposefully. She
pretended as if Harry wasn't even in the room, but then she turned around and looked at him
straight in the eyes.
"Mr Potter, would you like to have anything? Tea, coffee, water?"
"Um," Harry smiled at her. "I am fine, Hermione. Glad to see you."
She blinked, confused, and glanced at Tom who shook his head.
"Alright," she cleared her throat. "I will take care of this, Mr Riddle."
She left the room, and Harry was alone with bloody Tom Riddle again.
This story is mostly written. Due to my real life job, I have very little time to edit and
post it. But hopefully, once I am back home for Christmas, I should be able to post
chapters more often as before. I hope you enjoyed the chapter. Let me know which part
you liked best.
Also, I am planning to post another one of my fics, but wanted to know which one you
would prefer first.
1. 18 year old Harry travelling to 1945-1946 to seduce Riddle and prevent his dark lord
shenanigans
2. 6 year old Harry time travelling to 1927-1928 winter and finding one year old Riddle
in a dumpster
Please let me know in the comments. Both stories are written and will eventually be
posted. But I want to know which one you want first. lol
Chapter 7
Chapter Notes
Thank you guys for all the wonderful feedback you have left. It makes me happy to
know you are enjoying the story. I hope you are having amazing time, getting ready for
the end of the year.
Thank you Ariaes_Bijou for your translation of this work into Spanish.
the translation here
❤️ You can find
"Wow!" Harry folded the Daily Prophet and placed it back on the desk. "Skeeter must really
hate you."
Tom's expression darkened at the mention of the dreadful witch. The woman was clearly
trying to provoke him with the lurid and vulgar drivel she was publishing in the Daily
Prophet. It appeared he had given her the impression that he would tolerate appalling and
dirty tactics against his reign during his incumbency. Tom didn't intend to implement harsh
policies restricting the freedom of the press, but that didn't mean he wouldn't enact penalties
and sanctions against individuals slandering him in private.
Skeeter would soon find out what it meant to insult Tom Riddle.
"Well, I suppose no matter what, some people don't really change," Harry chuckled as if he
had discovered something truly entertaining. "She is still publishing the same sensational
garbage as always. On the other hand, she wouldn't write that rubbish if people didn't eat it
up. Yellow journalism sells."
"Brilliant observation," Tom noted, audibly unamused. "Perhaps you have other observations
and remarks regarding the sudden changes in your personality as well. Would you be a doll
and enlighten me?"
His pretty husband froze for a moment, then scowled at him like an irritated kitten. He sighed
and cupped his delicate face in exasperation.
"You won't ever let me be, will you?" he said, frustrated, slowly sliding his dainty hands over
his cheeks.
He was so bloody unbelievably beautiful. Tom couldn't ever get used to the man's strange,
captivating beauty. It helped that he was an incompetent, unruly bitch but now the recent
developments had added to his allure, making Tom keenly interested.
"You have gravely misjudged my character if you believe for a moment that I would simply
allow this to pass unnoticed," he said with a thin smirk. "I know you are hiding something
from me. Something has changed about you, and you are well aware of it yourself."
Harry tilted his head to glare at him with his teeth gritted as if he was holding himself back.
"Better worry about the fact that someone is trying to kill you," he advised, voice taking a
serious tone.
Tom had his theories. There wasn't a lot of knowledge on the Alluran bloodline. Whatever
they knew were myths mixed with outlandish exaggerations. This very rare magical genetic
makeup carried through the mitochondrial DNA was always the subject of fascination for
many wizards and witches. Except those born with this heritage were so rare and so highly
regarded that no research or studies were ever conducted to properly understand the
mechanics of their magic.
The Department of Mysteries had approached the Potters about their child, as some of the
Unspeakables had expressed an interest in studying Harry's magic. They were all fired from
the Ministry the next day. Tom knew about this because Rita Skeeter's rumour mill was
working relentlessly. James Potter would have never tolerated anyone treating his spoiled son
as a lab specimen. He had enough power and influence to wipe the floor with whoever dared
to look at his son the wrong way.
Harry's magic had always been extremely unstable and even if that wasn't the case, he didn't
have the capacity to properly control and wield it. Most magical heritages, in fact, just being
magical in general, were manifested later in life. Children generally started showing
symptoms of magic around the age of seven. Some exhibited signs of magic earlier, but they
were always exceptional. Tom was one of those special wizards that could perform wandless
intentional magic when was just four years old.
This new development with his husband could have been a simple manifestation of his
Alluran heritage. Except even then Tom couldn't explain how Harry knew so many spells,
some of them unknown to even Tom. No, something else was going on here. His husband's
behaviour, knowledge and outlook were completely different. Maturing to one's obscure
magical heritage didn't wipe out their entire personality.
Tom looked at Harry thoughtfully. The man was awkwardly flexing and jerking his legs. He
walked up to him and crouched down in front of him. Harry moved backwards, startled, but
Tom held him tightly, preventing him from falling over.
"I am fine," he hurried to say, trying to stop Tom from undoing the knots. "I'll live."
Tom shook his head and pulled the shoes off. He could tell that his feet were sore and hurting.
His husband was certainly the same delicate thing, except with a spitfire of a personality
added to the mix. He let his magic envelop the aching tissue and drew out the pain. The
moment the pain was forced out and replaced with the cool touch of his magic, Harry's face
softened, and he looked at him with a strange expression.
"You have changed, but your body hasn't," Tom told him thoughtfully. "Do you not trust me
to tell me what happened to you?"
Harry looked almost guilty, his gaze running around the room in panic as if he was
considering the moral implications of his confession.
"It's just that..." he started unsure of himself. "You are different too. Well, at least to me and I
—"
An abrupt and hasty knock ensued against the door and then in a swift motion, the door was
forced open as his secretary barged in visibly breathless as though she had sprinted all the
way from level 2 to his office.
"Mr Riddle," she said, hunching down to hold her knees and catch her breath. "Oh, I am
sorry. I didn't mean to rudely interrupt but one of the terrorists being interrogated just died
during the questioning."
Tom pressed his lips into a thin line, getting frustrated that he was surrounded by incompetent
idiots who didn't even take minimal precautions before apprehending the attackers and
making sure to do everything according to procedures. He helped his husband put his shoes
back on, gently guiding his feet into the footwear and got up, straightening his posture.
"What has happened, Ms Granger?" he inquired with an air of exasperation, reaching for his
wand.
"He just started convulsing during the interrogation and then died," Granger explained,
awkwardly staring at Harry and him. She seemed a little disturbed by the sight of the
Minister sharing what she might have interpreted as an intimate moment with his husband in
his office. "The Head of the Auror office is assuming it was some kind of poison he had
ingested earlier. Perhaps to ensure he won't give away any information once he is caught.
They are waiting for you and the specialists from Saint Mungo's. I did inform both Mr
Weasley and Mr Malfoy to come to your office for an immediate briefing."
"That's fine, Ms Granger," Tom said impassively. "I will be there in a moment. It seems I
need to have a word with my own cabinet about proper protocols."
Malfoy's work left much to be desired. He had appointed the imbecile because his father-in-
law asked him to and while Malfoy wasn't the worst academically, he was a complete failure
as a leader for the law enforcement department. Tom clenched his fists, wondering if he
should give him a formal reprimand. No wonder James Potter told him to watch Malfoy,
knowing that his nephew was a pathetic, ineffectual fool with no skills to be running a
magical law enforcement department.
"Please remain here while I handle this," he told Harry, holding his hand and squeezing it
gently as if in reassurance. "I don't need to worry about you, baby, do I?"
Harry's softened expression immediately soured, and he glared at him like he wanted to
throttle Tom. There it was—the intense fire and passion that he wanted to see.
"I am not staying here," his husband protested. "I am coming with you."
His secretary moved towards the door awkwardly, sensing the tension between them. Tom
regarded his husband for a short moment. He didn't want to leave the man alone on his own
devices. But taking him to the ground floor, where the interrogations took place with
dangerous criminals around, didn't seem right either.
"You understand that it's not only dangerous but you also have no business being there,
right?" he said in a disapproving tone.
"They attacked me," the man said unwavering in his resolve, then he leaned over to whisper
into his ear. "I don't trust your Aurors. I should see for myself who these people are."
"I could perhaps offer you some refreshments while you are waiting for your husband to take
care of this, Mr Potter," Granger asked, awkwardly grappling with the handle.
"That's alright, Ms Granger," Tom said after a moment of thought. "I'd rather have my
husband with me. After today's traumatic experience, I fear he doesn't want to be alone, and I
confess I do not wish to leave him out of my sight either."
"Yeah, aren't you the epitome of a caring husband? How did I ever manage without you?"
Harry snarked, earning a raised brow from his secretary who was getting progressively more
alarmed at Harry's odd behaviour. She opened the door and stepped outside.
"Behave, baby," Tom whispered with a mocking lilt to his tone as he pulled Harry closer. "I
suppose I can take comfort in the familiarity of you still being a mouthy little brat."
"Yeah, right?" Harry shook his head, moving towards the door. "Whatever makes your day
brighter."
They walked out and headed towards the stairs. Hermione Granger kept shooting curious
glances at her husband, and he kept smiling back at her. There was some kind of nervous
anticipation surrounding Harry almost as if he wanted to say something to Granger, but he
was refraining from making a conversation.
The sound of heels against the marble stair steps was echoing as they were making their way
down to the special interrogations chambers located under the Ministry.
Granger suddenly turned around and tumbled as her heels became twisted. She almost fell
down the stairs, but Harry rushed to catch her and steadied her.
"Are you alright, Hermione?" he hurried to ask, holding her by the shoulders. Granger
blushed embarrassed and nodded. Harry let go of her and cleared his throat. "Those shoes
don't look comfortable at all."
Tom moved around to pull his husband away from his secretary. Harry stumbled into his
arms and looked at him with a frown.
"Take a small break, Ms Granger," Tom told her. "I do not wish for you to be overwhelmed.
Maybe have some tea."
"I insist," Tom said politely, voice bearing the tone of finality indicating that she was
supposed to do as she was told.
She turned around and went up the stairs, leaving Harry and Tom alone once again. Harry
was quiet, lost in silent thoughts. It was almost as if he was somewhere else, hiding in that
strange dark room of his mind, alone and scared. It made Tom wonder what was hidden
behind the shell of this man's mind.
Tom held his hand as they walked down the stairs, feeling the soft smooth skin under his
fingertips.
They reached the basement level. Two hit wizards, standing guard in front of the barred
gates, gave the Minister a polite greeting and stared at his husband in awe, barely hiding their
curiosity. Harry Potter was a novelty of sorts no matter where he stepped foot. Even war-
hardened special unit wizards couldn't help but be dazzled by his beauty and normally the
airhead enjoyed the attention, but now he didn't seem to notice anyone.
"This way, Minister," they opened the warded gates for them.
The interrogation level was cold and musty, heating charms never clinging to these sullen,
miserable walls. Harry's sweet smell reached his nostrils, carried by the thin breeze pulling
through the grates. He smelled like fresh snowdrops blooming through the snow, fighting
against the harsh cold to spread out their petals.
There were Aurors in the corridors and halls. Everyone was in a hurry but they stopped to
greet the Minister with a quick incline of their head. A man was being carted out of the room.
Two Aurors were examining the body in the stretcher while Malfoy and Weasley were having
a conversation on the corner, their voices hushed and protected by muffling charms.
That's until Malfoy spotted his cousin.
"Harry," he rushed forward, relief washing over his tired, fretful face. "Merlin, where were
you? We have been looking for you. I was so bloody worried."
He approached Harry and, wrapping his arms around him, lifted him into the air abruptly.
Tom stared incredulously.
"What the bloody fuck, Malfoy?" Harry flailed in Malfoy's arms and hit him in the chest until
the blonde let him down. Harry almost stumbled backward, but Tom steadied his husband,
holding his delicate back. "What the fuck is wrong with you, Malfoy?"
"Are you okay? Are you injured?" Malfoy seemed to pay no attention to his cousin's enraged
interjections. He cupped Harry's face, looking for signs of injury while the lurne was a hair's
breadth from cursing Malfoy.
"Mr Malfoy," Tom wanted to swat away Malfoy's hands from Harry's face but controlled
himself. "Please brief me on the details of the detained criminal's death."
"Yes, Minister," Malfoy let go of Harry and straightened his posture to address him. Malfoy's
little spawn was always polite to him, but Tom knew he didn't exactly like him. "He started
convulsing during the interrogation. We suspect he had ingested poison prior to being
caught."
Harry was staring down at the corpse on the stretcher as Mediaurors were reviewing his body
for curses and any dangerous artifacts. Tom stepped closer to his husband, placing his hand
on his slender back protectively and briskly viewing the dead man's deformed face. He was
tall and burly with bulging muscles visible through his tattered white shirt. His long crazy
hair was dirty and dishevelled. His robes were grimy, tinted with strange purple liquid.
"Not yet, Minister. We are still running diagnostic spells, trying to detect any additional
curses placed on him before we can take him to the infirmary for further investigation."
Harry's gaze was focused on the man intently. It was as if he was seeing something that no
one else could see.
"I don't think he ingested the poison before being caught," Harry said, leaning over the
corpse. "Look at his lips, chin and the collar of his shirt. It's lilac. There are still remnants of
strange liquid on the surface of his skin."
The Mediaurors stared at Harry in confusion, clearly recognising him but didn't dare to stop
him when the man approached the corpse and placed his hands on the criminal's face.
"What are you doing?" Tom tried to stop him but Harry gripped the man's jaw and pushed it
down, prying his mouth open. He held the man's face and didn't seem disgusted to pull apart
the lips of a rotting corpse.
"I can smell it," he said, lifting his head and looking at the Mediaurors. "This man is not
dead."
"Of course, he is dead," one of the Mediaurors scoffed, offended at the suggestion that he
wouldn't be able to distinguish between the dead and the living.
"He's not dead. He has just ingested a low dosage of Draught of Living Death," Harry said.
"Look into his mouth. Do you see his first molar on his lower jaw? It's broken. There is still
some residue of the draught there. He clearly had it inside his mouth all this time and
shuttered his tooth when he realised he would be forced to give away crucial information.
The liquid must have been preserved in a compacting spell and had burst into his mouth,
making him cough it out. You can even see the broken pieces of dental tissue still on his
tongue. He wasn't having convulsions, he was just retching out the draught in his mouth
which is why it spilled out into his chin and shirt, tinting his collar lilac. He is alive."
Tom's eyes widened when he realised that Harry was right. How the fuck was he right? How
the fuck was he correct about this? There was no way he could know. Harry was surprising
him more and more.
"How did you know?" one of the Mediaurors asked, eyes burning with curiosity, but at the
same time, a little upset that didn't realise what was going on with the man.
"I smelled it," Harry said. "And I've seen dead people, he doesn't look dead to me."
"You smelled it?" they laughed. "It doesn't have a smell, boy."
"That's the Minister's husband," he reminded his colleague with a whisper but everyone could
hear him clearly.
The man's head shot up, and he stared at Harry and Tom.
"My apologies," he said, stammering. "You're just too young to have such extensive
knowledge about these type of potions"
Harry was silent. Tom could see the tension in his muscles. His fingers were curled around a
bunch of fabric on his trousers.
"He's not dead," Harry repeated after a moment. "This technique has been used by Muggles
in the past."
"That sounds brilliant," Weasley said, coming forward. Harry stared at the redhead with
strange sadness in his eyes. "I have read about it too and that seems plausible."
"We can try giving him Wiggenweld Potion but I doubt it will help since this man seems
dead," the Mediauror told them with a proud frown. "His body is stiffening and while it is
possible that he has ingested the draught, it might have still caused his death. The potion also
doesn't have any smell."
"It's not the potion that I smelled," Harry said tonelessly, still watching the corpse on the
stretcher. "But lack of death. He doesn't smell dead."
That made the Mediaurors laugh in amusement and they shook their heads.
"Look, Harry, it seems you have had quite the day," Malfoy interjected. "How about I have
my secretary take you to the Ministry cafeteria, and you can have some tea or coffee?"
"How about not?" Harry glared at him and moved away to the other side of the stretcher.
Before Tom could get a hold of his pureblood husband, Weasley awkwardly waved at him.
"May I have a word, Minister?" he asked politely. He moved to the corner, indicating he
wanted to discuss something discretely. Perhaps, Malfoy was being an arse again and had
circumvented guidelines causing total chaos. Ron Weasley was not the brightest, but he was
certainly more competent than Malfoy and had not reached his position due to connections
and nepotism.
Tom nodded and moved towards Weasley while still watching his husband bicker with his
cousin. It seemed this new Harry didn't exactly like Malfoy, not that the old one was fond of
the spinless blonde coward.
"How can I help, Mr Weasley?" he asked, flicking his wand to cast privacy charms.
"I think we have a spy in the Ministry," Weasley said. "I have been reviewing the logs for the
past several months, and I have noticed some inconsistencies in the Auror mission reports. I
have dispatched my teams immediately today and some of them were re-directed to different
locations to handle trivial objectives."
Tom's demeanour didn't change as he was in perfect control of his facial expressions.
Showing weakness in front of his subordinates was unacceptable.
"Did you bring this to Mr Malfoy's attention?" he asked, eyes narrowing slightly.
"I did," Weasley said with a bit of repressed vindication. "Mr Malfoy was adamant that I stop
wasting Magical Law Enforcement's recourses to chase after moon frogs. He didn't think it
was a big deal."
"You have my permission to start a special task force to investigate this issue, and please,
make sure all the members are trustworthy," Tom told him.
Weasley nodded. The redhead and his family were vehemently opposed to him when he ran
for Minister and were rooting for Longbottom. But the Weasleys had been cordial to him
after he became Minister.
The sudden commotion interrupted their conversation. Tom looked up and realised with
horror that the man lying on the stretcher was on his feet. He pulled out his wand to subdue
the criminal, but the bastard had grabbed Harry, shielding himself from any spells. The
Mediaurors were both lying on the floor, either too startled by the sudden resurrection or
because the man had kicked them.
"Don't," Tom ordered Weasley when the Auror tried to send a petrification hex at the man.
His long fingernails were pressed against Harry's delicate neck, the spell would petrify him
and the pressure would push his nasty nails into Harry's throat. The disgusting vermin
seemed to be a werewolf. The man backed away dragging Harry with him into the
interrogation room and shut the door behind them.
"Fuck," Malfoy screamed at the Aurors. "How could you let this happen?"
"Open the door," Tom ordered as the Aurors fumbled about trying to find their footing after
the incident.
"The doors can't be opened without the spellbound key," Weasley said. "Robinson, you took
the key from the interrogation room like I told you?"
The Auror who must have been Robinson paled, losing all colour on his face.
Tom palmed his face in fury. He was surrounded by absolutely incompetent fools. He was
going to dismiss all of these idiots.
"Get another key, Robinson," Weasley ordered. "Hurry up, we don't have time."
The man ran away with his tail between his legs as soon as the petrifying fear dulled down.
"This is all your fault, Weasley," Malfoy screamed. "Your stupid Aurors can't even take care
of one puny criminal."
Tom didn't have time for these worthless arguments. He needed to get his husband out of that
cell unharmed, and Malfoy's screeching and yelling didn't permit him to think.
"Mr Malfoy, please remain professional," he advised coldly, walking into the one-way mirror
room. His heart thrummed in his chest as he watched his husband struggle in the man's tight
grip. Tom pointed his wand at the mirror and started casting blasting spells. The mirror would
shutter eventually. "Assist me with this."
"Easy, princess," the werewolf sneered. "Or I will rip your pretty head off."
Tom was going to skin this piece of shit when he got his hands on the man.
Harry suddenly went slack in criminal's hands, making the man smirk satisfied, but when he
loosened his grip, Harry grabbed his arm tightly and executed a shoulder throw, flipping the
man over his shoulder and onto the ground. The Malfoy stopped casting the blasting spell,
staring at Harry in horror. The man on the floor seemed to be startled as well.
"You are welcome to try, tosser," Harry rolled his eyes. "My head is attached to my neck by
some pretty sturdy bones and muscles. I'd say your chances of success are about as likely as
finding a functioning brain cell in that empty head of yours."
The man on the ground groaned in pain, clutching his side. Harry was absolutely breathtaking
in his rage as he glared at the vermin who had taken him hostage. Tom's eyes were greedily
eating the image of his delicate husband, standing over the beast he had slammed down. He
was enthralled. He couldn't take his eyes away and couldn't even hear Malfoy complaining
about the Auror taking too long to bring the spare key.
"Aren't you a feisty, little thing?" the werewolf mocked as he got up, grunting and moaning
like a badly tuned violin. "Maybe, I shouldn't kill you. Maybe, I should just turn you. What
do you say? Huh? Bite that wee neck of yours and turn you into a bitch. Would your daddy
still like you if you were turning into a werewolf every month?"
The moment stilled. Malfoy panicked. Tom cursed. He couldn't let this man intentionally give
Harry lycanthropy. He knew darker spells that could do more damage to the mirror, so he cast
them, making Weasley gasp shocked that the Minister would do that, but despite the fact, the
head Auror continued the work without making any comments.
Something strange had twisted Harry's expression. Tom noticed how his hands shook, but it
was not out of fear. It almost seemed he was holding himself back from lunging at the
werewolf.
"And have you done this often?" he said, watching the man with the vigilance of a combat
soldier, eyes focused and posture on guard. "Turn people against their will?"
Trap them in their heads, deprive them of their own will to act as themselves. It seemed those
words went unsaid, but Tom could see Harry meant them. His husband had a barely
restrained rage, burning in his evocative, pretty eyes. Such a strange but intriguing contrast.
Harry had no wand in his hands, but his stance screamed danger.
"Wizards treat me like I am an animal," the werewolf laughed. "Might as well prove them
right, no?"
"Stay where you are," Harry advised. "If you come close to me, I will hurt you."
"Really?" the werewolf laughed. "You've taken me by surprise the first time, but that won't
happen again."
Harry didn't move from his spot when the man lunged at him. He remained still, standing his
ground, and simply waved his hands. Powerful magic gripped the werewolf and tossed him
against the wall.
"Your brain seems damaged," Harry commented. "You don't seem to understand simple
warnings. Come closer, and it's your bones the Aurors will be picking off the ground. They
might need a scraper and a mop too."
"What are you doing?" Malfoy screamed, agitated by Harry's brazen and provocative attitude,
worried that the werewolf would maul his dainty little cousin. The git started knocking on the
mirror instead of working on the spells.
"He can't hear you," Tom informed him. "He is doing quite well, buying time until we can get
to him. Please continue maintaining the blasting spells without interruptions."
The werewolf's features were half-morphed and this was the first time Tom had seen a
werewolf like this. Harry seemed slightly startled by this as well, but he didn't lose his focus.
When the man lunged at Harry, Harry simply sidestepped, sending the man toppling down as
he lost his balance and footing, trying to maneuver mid-attack. This seemed to make him
more angry.
"I am going to enjoy ripping you into shreds," he promised Harry, showing his teeth as his
canines grew longer.
"Oh, you're going to enjoy ripping me into shreds? Well, at least someone gets to have fun
today!" Harry snarked. "Too bad, that would require for you to have teeth."
The werewolf charged at Harry but stopped halfway through as the force of magic seeping
from Harry vanished his teeth.
"What have you done?" he hissed, slurring his sounds now that he didn't have teeth to
pronounce the alveolar sounds properly, almost like a snake. Harry seemed amused.
The man attacked him and to everyone's surprise, Harry dodged his attack again. He jumped
on the table gaining a higher ground. The werewolf turned around and charged at him,
dropping Harry off the table, they tumbled on the ground. Harry was too slim and slight to be
able to throw off the big werewolf, even though he was as tall as the latter.
Harry bridged his hips, throwing the other man off his balance, and then used the opportunity
to crawl away only to wrap his legs around the werewolf's neck and lock him in a chokehold.
Tom was getting frustrated. He needed to get Harry out of there. The spells were ineffective
so he resorted to something that would raise eyebrows if Malfoy and Weasley were any
wiser. He cursed the mirror, making the elemental structure of the solid surface fall apart. The
mirror shuttered. He pointed his wand at the werewolf and petrified him.
"Call a dark artifact unit," he ordered Malfoy. "Make sure not to touch anything until the
clean-up is done."
Malfoy seemed stunned to say anything but nodded. Tom entered the interrogation room and
rushed to Harry.
"Are you okay?" he asked, helping his husband to his feet. "You are really reckless, aren't
you?"
"You are lucky your magic is unstable," Malfoy said with a relieved sigh. "What were you
thinking, antagonising a werewolf?"
Malfoy thought Harry wasn't intentionally casting spells. How naive! Tom knew that Harry
Potter did everything in that room with a precision of a seasoned hit wizard, and it was
absolutely mind-boggling.
"Let's get you out of here," he told Harry, pulling him with him. "Mr Malfoy, please, oversee
the situation. I would want this incident to be under wraps. As for this man, isolate him for
further investigation. We will have a briefing much later. I am afraid, Harry had had enough
for one day. Let's go."
The Auror Robinson bumped into them when they were leaving. The man was red-faced and
panting.
Tom quelled him with a cold look and motioned him towards the interrogation rooms. The
man fled right away without saying anything else. They walked silently and when they were
in the Atrium, Tom pulled Harry into a quiet corner, away from prying eyes.
"It seemed to anger you," Tom said thoughtfully. "The idea of being trapped in your mind,
unable to control yourself. Is it something that happened to you?"
Harry Potter had changed and this could have been a possible explanation. Perhaps, the real
Harry suddenly had gained control of himself after years of being trapped.
"What?" Harry blinked, confused, his beautiful lashes fanning his eyes. "No, it's just... well,
it's not right you know... I mean I feel sorry for him. Werewolves aren't exactly treated the
best, but intentionally contaminating others is just evil."
Tom knew that Harry wasn't telling him something but he didn't press. Harry moved to sit
down on the bench, making Tom kneel in front of him to examine him properly. Tom held
Harry's face, and Harry let him. He murmured spells to heal any injuries.
"I am fine," Harry said, trying to move away, but groaned in discomfort as he clutched his
stomach. "Shit, must have bruised it during wrestling with that crazy lunatic."
"Let me see," Tom told him, placing his hands on Harry's stomach. He didn't even need to
murmur any spells. The magic flowed from his hands, healing and soothing Harry's injuries.
There was a bright flash of a camera, and Tom sighed annoyed when he realised it was
someone from the Daily Prophet, but didn't move or do anything. His glare was enough to
send the man running.
"Well, when you grow up in an orphanage," Tom smiled. "You learn a thing or two."
"You are different," Harry said, and there was a sad smile on his lips.
"Different than what?"
"Feeling better?" Tom asked with a smile, not pushing Harry for an answer. Harry nodded.
The day was awful. Harry's plan of acting the part and then getting his wand and escaping
had been rendered completely useless. He had tolerated a boring social affair, fought for his
life against terrorists, was interrogated by Riddle, gawked at by creepy fuckers and was
bloody attacked by an unhinged werewolf.
Shit couldn't be crazier, and Harry had died a couple of days ago.
Riddle seemed nice, well, at least he pretended to be nice, and it made Harry feel both
relaxed and strangely disturbed.
Harry didn't know what he wanted to do with his new life. Clearly, someone was after him.
They had already killed the other Harry and were now trying to take him out. Harry would
have to stick around to find out who it was and take care of them.
Seeing Ron and Hermione was so strange. A part of him wanted to jump and hug them, tell
them he was happy to see their faces. But Ron and Hermione didn't know him. They weren't
his friends. They were different people. He had lost his friends.
It was hard to reconcile with the idea as they looked exactly like the people Harry loved and
cherished.
Tom was attentive and caring. Harry couldn't call him a bad person. He had helped the people
during the attack, cared for Harry and was cordial with his subordinates. It was strange, but
Harry was not a man who judged others based on his own prejudices. Tom bloody Riddle was
a decent man here and while Harry didn't exactly like him, he wished him all the best. He just
needed to solve the issue of someone wanting to murder him, then he would leave Britain for
good. There was no point staying around and torturing himself with being surrounded by
loved ones who were eerie copies.
"You seem unwell," Riddle told him as they headed to his office.
"No," Harry shook his head. "I was just thinking things."
And just when he was thinking the man wasn't so bad, he had to open his mouth and ruin the
mood. Harry rolled his eyes.
"It was a long day," Harry complained. "I want to be home and just relax."
"I will take you home," Riddle told him, opening the door to his office. "I need to attend to a
few matters before we can depart."
"Harry!" Lily Potter seated in the Minister's office got up and rushed to him. "Your father and
I were so worried about you when we couldn't find you. Are you okay, sweetheart?"
"I am fine, Mum," he said, allowing her to cuddle him into her arms. "We had to apparate to
safety. I am sorry we didn't contact earlier."
"Of course, Sir," Tom smiled politely, his demeanour not giving away what he was thinking
or feeling. "We can go to my private chambers."
He opened the door inside his office that Harry hadn't seen before and invited his father-in-
law. He promptly shut the door as soon as they both were inside. Harry didn't know how to
react to that, so he simply closed his eyes and buried his face in his mother's neck, breathing
in her soothing smell.
"Oh, sweety," Lily caressed his head. "You don't need to worry your father and husband will
take care of everything."
Harry pulled back to look at his mother. She was a sweet, naive woman who for some reason
thought that Harry was scared of what had happened and it almost appeared humourous that
she would suggest for Harry not to worry because bloody Tom Riddle and whoever was that
psycho man masquerading as James Potter would take care of things.
"I'm relieved to know that my father and husband will take care of everything. I was starting
to worry about what I would do with all that extra time and independence," he snarked,
unable to hold himself back, but his mother didn't react to it. She only smiled and plastered
kisses all over his face.
"Such horrible people," Lily sighed. "How can anyone be opposed to magical children having
a safe and cosy place to grow up? I can't believe anyone would want to destroy an
orphanage."
Harry could think of plenty of people who wouldn't agree with that kind of orphanage. It
seemed the world was black and white for Lily Potter. She seemed nice but out of touch and
it was painful that a version of Harry's mum would be like this. Harry didn't begrudge her, but
he also didn't agree with her.
Out of all the things in the world Harry had to put up with, this bullshit was never on the list.
It felt like people around Harry were treating him like he was an incompetent child. He
wanted to say something but was interrupted by the door opening and Riddle and his father
walking back in.
"That's all will be settled tomorrow," Tom said, looking at James. "But for now, I am afraid, I
will need to retire as Harry is incredibly tired."
Harry was sick and tired. That's right. But he didn't like how Riddle was propping that fact as
a crutch.
His parents smiled, hugged and kissed him.
"We will see you tomorrow," James said, gently brushing away Harry's hair as Tom held his
arm for apparition.
"Good night," Harry said with a halfhearted smile before their bodies were transported, and
they landed outside the grounds.
Once they were home, Harry took a bath and went straight to bed to sleep. It wasn't even late,
but he was really done. Riddle didn't speak to him at all after his conversation with James
Potter and simply went to his study. Harry didn't care but he had to admit it bothered him a
little that Riddle ignored him.
The morning light was bright, seeping through large windows and spreading over the bedding
and the furniture in the room. Harry felt so cosy and comfortable, wrapped in a soft blanket
and surrounded by the scent of fresh blooming flowers. Dobby must have brought in new
flowers. It felt like he was swimming in the warm lagoon of soothing comfort.
His consciousness slowly stirred awake. Harry tried to move his head underneath the blanket
to prolong his sleep but immediately feeling warm hands wrap around his waist forced him to
open his eyes in alarm.
Riddle was awake, staring at him intently like he was observing an exotic animal that he had
never seen before and wanted to dissect and understand its intricacies. Seeing Harry awake
and staring at him, he smiled. Bloody hell! He was so goddamn beautiful when he was
smiling. Harry's stupid heart fluttered in his chest.
Well, it wasn't like Harry wasn't married. So he sighed and let himself be held. Riddle
smelled so good. Harry inhaled his fresh crispy smell and gulped.
"Did you sleep well?" he asked Harry, petting his hair like Harry was a kitten. It was almost
absurd, but Harry simply allowed it to happen. It felt so nice, and he didn't have the will to
fight and deny himself small pleasures.
"Yes," he said, slowly stretching. "What about you? I didn't see you coming to bed."
His cheeks turned bright red. Merlin, he didn't even think how that sounded before he opened
his mouth. And why was Riddle not sleeping in his own room?
"I had some work I needed to finish," he told Harry. "We need to make a public appearance
today, and I needed to prepare for it."
"You will need to come with me," Tom told him. "To show your support..."
"Sure," Harry agreed. "I'll be there. Will watch out for any terrorists if you give me my
wand."
Riddle snorted. "I will give you your wand," he said with a grin. "But please do not wreak
havoc. It seems you have quite the temper. All you need to do is to read your pre-written
speech to the public. It has already been prepared. Barty will be here soon and provide you
with your speech."
"Fine," Harry mumbled, pulling out of Tom's arms and getting off the bed. "I will go take a
shower and get dressed then."
Tom didn't take his eyes off him, still watching him with a strange, attentive, almost
obsessive gaze. Harry blinked awkwardly and left to take a shower. He would bathe, but he
had no idea when Barty Crouch would show up, and he wanted to be ready. The shower was
hot and quick and was the right step to ensure he was fully awake and alert.
He asked Dobby to help him dress up as he had no idea what to put on to look proper for
whatever political maneuvering this public appearance was going to be. Riddle wasn't a bad
man, and Harry wanted to help him. Also, he really needed to find out who killed the other
Harry before he could leave the country.
Dobby seemed eager to dress him up. He dressed Harry into a dark suit and robes. It seemed
the most suiting colour scheme, considering how somber the incident the day prior was.
"I am glad I have you, Dobby," Harry told the elf gently. Dobby seemed very proud to hear
such praise.
"Dobby is happy to please master Harry," Dobby told him, gently brushing and taming
Harry's hair, applying some kind of salve that made his hair strands smooth and soft.
Dobby preened under the praise and vanished. Harry got up, went to the drawing room and
found Riddle impeccably dressed, standing by the fireplace, waiting. He stared at Harry, and
Harry turned his head away, avoiding meeting his eyes.
The floo network got activated, and Barty Crouch Jr stepped out of the fireplace. He was
holding a huge bouquet of flowers and a basket of precious enchanted apples. Tom stared at
his undersecretary, baffled by the man's wide smile that was directed at him.
"Congratulations, Minister," he said happily unable to hold himself back from squealing.
"Congratulations Harry. I am so happy. We needed this amazing news at this period of
turmoil."
Barty handed the flowers to confused Harry and placed the basket of blood-red enchanted
apples on the decorative stand. These were expensive. Barty must have spent a fortune to buy
them. Tom seemed a little disturbed by the excitement Barty was showing as well. Harry
placed the flowers on the table and called Dobby to put them in a vase.
"Barty, I am afraid, I do not understand the reason for your festive mood and the
congratulatory statements," Tom said, regarding Barty with a curt and sharp expression.
"Oh," Barty's expression faltered for a second, but then the grin came back with a little bit of
guilt. "I didn't know that you didn't want to announce the pregnancy so soon."
Harry stared at Barty expectantly. Was Riddle's lover somewhere pregnant? Harry found the
idea that Riddle could have children even if he was not Voldemort highly disturbing.
Barty looked puzzled by this line of questioning and handed his Lord a copy of the daily
prophet. Harry leaned closer to see what was this nonsense about.
"Breaking news: Minister Tom Riddle's husband expecting. A new VIP addition to the
cabinet?
The high profile couple was spotted after the disastrous event together at the Ministry in each
other's arms while the Minister was lovingly touching his lurne husband's baby bump. Our
correspondent was able to confirm with those close to the couple who wished to remain
anonymous that Harry Potter Riddle was in fact expecting. Given the uncertainty of the
current political climate, this lighthearted news has brought some hope and optimism to the
wizarding public in need of good news amidst all the seriousness and terror attacks. Let's be
real, a baby's giggle is more refreshing than a Minister's decidedly pro-muggleborn policies."
"What the fuck?" Harry yelled, snatching the newspaper and staring at the article. There was
a photo of Tom and Harry. It was taken when Tom was healing the bruise on his ribs and had
placed his hands on his stomach. Just what the fuck was wrong with Skeeter to come up with
this crap?
Harry looked at Riddle who was palming his face in frustration. His eyes wandered to Barty
who now looked concerned. Did this idiot seriously think Harry was pregnant? He was a
goddamn man. Or did the creep fantasise that his master possessed such absolute vitality that
even a man could get pregnant? Now that sounded amusing.
"She is bonkers," Harry yelled, shaking his head. "What the fuck is wrong with this crazy
woman?"
Tom sighed.
He grabbed Harry's hand and pulled him into the nearby room, locking the door behind him
to Harry's confusion.
Chapter End Notes
Hope you enjoyed the newest chapter. Let me know which parts were the most fun to
read and if you have any speculations as to what will happen once Tom and Harry are
faced with the public.
Also, after counting the initial votes in the last chapter, the second story had won, so I
have posted it. The new story is called "Syzygy" and you can find it here.
More stories will be posted soon as I intend to share all the stories I have written in the
past with you.
Chapter 8
Chapter Notes
Thank you for all the love and support for this story. I hope you enjoy this chapter. ❤️
See the end of the chapter for more notes
"Fucking crazy bitch," Harry ran his fingers through his soft hair in exasperation. "How
insane must one be to write this kind of bollocks?"
He turned to glance at Tom, expecting to see the other equally baffled by Skeeter's raving
mad declarations, but the man looked composed albeit a little displeased. Riddle sighed and
sat on the sofa, pressed against the large oval windows. He pinched the bridge of his nose and
then rubbed his temples.
"This complicates everything," the man stated, elegantly crossing his legs. "The journalists
will be all over this. They are going to ask questions about the pregnancy. Please refrain from
answering questions regarding this matter. Do not confirm or deny anything."
Harry snorted. Was everyone out of their bloody minds? Was Riddle seriously asking Harry
not to deny being bloody pregnant? Did Riddle hit his head and forget he married a bloke and
definitely not one with childbearing abilities? Some men could get pregnant, of course, but
Harry definitely didn't have such ability. He had examined himself thoroughly on the day he
arrived and was sure of it. Surely with how much interest the public had in Harry, everyone
would know this as well. Riddle was just being a smug bastard. The git was so full of
himself, he probably thought his dick was just that good he could get another bloke pregnant
just by breathing around them with his overbrimming virility.
"Why are we entertaining this?" he demanded. "Anyone believing this rubbish must be off
their trolley. I shouldn't be surprised though that the barmy cow wrote this shite. She had out
for me. Baby bump? Where is she seeing any bumps here?"
He shook the Daily Prophet in his hands, glaring at the paper with petulant annoyance.
Harry's body was thin and willowy. Skeeter had some kind of screw loose in the head and
must have imagined accusing Harry of being pregnant was some kind of insult. There was
nothing insulting about a pregnancy but Harry was itching to throttle Skeeter for telling lies
about him. He wondered why she would come up with such a nonsensical lie of all things.
"You don't have to worry about this," Riddle told him thoughtfully as if he was calculating
some kind of important outcome. "Just avoid answering their questions. I will take care of the
rest. Either way, this will be interpreted as a political stunt to cause distraction in the current
circumstances."
"In what world does this article deserve a denial or confirmation?" Harry asked, throwing the
paper on the porcelain stand. "Clearly, she intended to mock me, but I am not one bit
offended by her implications. I don't care what Skeeter and her ilk think of me. If she thinks
calling me pregnant is a condescending jab at my manliness or whatever, I don't give a fuck. I
don't need Rita's stamp of approval."
Riddle stared at him. There was a slight confusion marring his features. His eyes scanned
over Harry like a predatory animal searching for its prey, looking for any vulnerabilities.
"I am unsure why you think the article was intended to be condescending," Riddle told him,
maintaining an iron grip on his composure. "She is simply creating chaos with her lies and
trying to destabilise the political discourse by injecting sensational news about your
pregnancy. By virtue of it being untrue, my integrity will be questioned since this will be
spun by my opposition as an attempt made by me or my cabinet to distract the public during
my political failings. Skeeter will receive some flak for publishing fake stories, but the public
will assume she did so on my behalf."
The man leaned back into the cushions, palmed his face, frustrated and let out an exhausted
sigh.
"I am sorry," Harry laughed. "This is just hilarious. I can't get pregnant even if I wanted to.
Why would anyone believe this?"
Riddle lifted his head to stare at Harry and raised an eyebrow, assessing him. Harry waved
his hands in the air, annoyance becoming palpable.
"Are you pretending not to notice how absurd this whole thing is? Why would anyone take
this article seriously and think I might be pregnant? I clearly can't get pregnant unless you are
fancying yourself as some kind of virility god."
"I do not fancy myself as anything, baby," Riddle laughed, staring at Harry with a strange
look in his eyes which Harry would like to label as unhinged but he wasn't so sure at this
point. "You, on the other hand, do have a magic enabling it. Ancient, powerful magic, one of
a kind that allows you to do things that no other can do. I don't understand why you are acting
like this is such a shock. After all, having Alluran bloodline and being able to create a
magical life has always been your only redeeming quality in the eye of the public. Surely,
you are not going to stand there and pretend you don't understand what that means."
Harry froze.
Fuck!
He kept on hearing about his lurne blood and having children, but it couldn't be true, could it?
Harry's mother kept on making comments about having children, and Harry just assumed...
No that made no sense. Harry had bathed and seen himself naked. He didn't seem to have any
anatomy suggesting he had any ability to conceive and carry any children. Riddle was just
fucking with him, the bastard!
"I don't understand what that means," he insisted, his heart beating wildly in his chest. There
was a sense of horror growing inside the pit of his stomach; a strange experience of fear and
eerie sensation that made him feel almost as if he were under a spell.
Riddle was watching him with eyes full of wonder. Different emotions were passing through
his face that Harry could barely catch as the man was expertly controlling his expressions.
Harry could sense that some kind of realisation dawned on the man, and then he got up and
strode towards Harry in quick measured steps. Harry almost fell back, but Riddle was quick
and caught him swiftly, clasping Harry in his embrace and staring into his eyes.
Harry blinked and glanced up at Tom. Surrounded by the man's warmth, he almost felt
weightless and comforted like a man sitting by the fire on a cold rainy day. Riddle's cool
smell filled Harry's nostrils, making him shiver in the man's embrace. Blood rushed in all the
wrong directions, and Harry blushed, shying away from the sudden proximity.
Tom's face was so unbelievably handsome. Harry had the urge to run his finger through the
man's carefully combed hair. He was elegant and refined; he commanded authority by his
mere presence, and Harry gulped strangely aroused by the idea. Riddle looked dashing and
cultured, the kind of man that if one saw them walking in the street without knowing much
about them, would assume that he had a pretty woman or a man warming his bed.
"It seems you are a different person after all," the man whispered into his ear, holding him
closer. "If you don't know what your bloodline allows you to do. What it allows me to do to
you."
What the fuck! Harry pushed Riddle away and moved towards the other side of the room,
glaring at Riddle who seemed somehow amused by his reaction.
Riddle's amusement didn't wane. He moved towards him again and brought Harry back into
his arms, gently wrapping his hands around Harry like Harry was a hissing kitten and not a
real threat. He gently brushed away the soft curls on Harry's face, his fingers lingering and
stroking the smooth, silky skin.
"Magic can do so many things," Riddle told him in a soft, almost sultry voice. "It can turn a
mere goblet into a mouse and can make others discard their will and submit to another. Magic
can create creatures, and it can give one a face of another. So many wonderful, awe-inspiring
possibilities, isn't that right, baby?"
Riddle took a special pleasure in mocking Harry. Harry only rolled his eyes.
"Very funny," he said, staring back into Riddle's eyes. "I see what you are suggesting but I
have never heard of such possibility. You'd think there would be plenty of pregnant wizards
running about if such magic was possible. So stop pulling my leg."
Harry shook his head. He wasn't interested in the theory of magic to care to know. His
pressing concern right now was that there was an article published in the Daily Prophet
claiming he was pregnant, and the way Riddle was acting suggested it might be true. The
worst part wasn't the suggestion of pregnancy but the implication that Riddle knocked him
up.
"Because magic can create many things, but never another being with a magical ability of its
own. It's why werewolves produce an ordinary wolf instead of a child when they mate in
their wolf forms as their wolf forms are created with magic. Same reason why magical
pregnancies end in stillbirths, it doesn't matter if you are a man or a woman, you can't use
magic to create a human with magical abilities. Even something as simple as Amortentia can
cause irreversible damage to a sorcerer conceived with the use of it. Magic has rules, and you
can't use it to simply create an enormous army of magical beings. Many witches and wizards
have tried through centuries to use magic to create life, but it never ends well.
"Do you know what Ekrizdis was doing in Azkaban? He had countless men and women
locked up there and was experimenting on them, growing the necessary anatomy, healing and
patching those who were barren but no matter what neither men nor women could conceive
any children and those that did, gave birth to stillborn, soulless abominations."
"Well, great," Harry exclaimed. "I mean, not great. Never mind, I am confused about where
you are going with this."
"Well, no one can create magical life using magic, except those with Alluran blood," Riddle
told him softly, running his fingers over Harry's face. "It is why the legends say Alluran witch
or a wizard created the first magic bearers. You do not have the ability to get pregnant
naturally but were anyone to provide you with the right potions, you would be able not only
to get pregnant but bear a very strong magical child successfully. Which is why Skeeter
thought it was an excellent opportunity to write these lies because people are quite curious
about you. A wizard with Alluran blood in their lifetime having a child? They must be
intrigued."
Fuck!
Harry gulped. This was mental. The good thing was that he wasn't ever planning to take any
potions and fuck Riddle. He looked up at the man, still surrounded by his warm arms and
inhaled softly. Riddle was looking at him with amusement.
"Of course," the man leaned closer to whisper into his ear. "You should have known all of
these already, baby, which begs the question, what has happened to you?"
Bloody hell! Things were getting worse the longer Harry stayed in this new reality. His
counterpart must have had it rough growing up with the constant reminder of his worth being
tied to birthing a bunch of magical children; no wonder the guy had lost his mind and acted
out. Harry was horrified by the notion of pregnancy. Was this why Harry's father practically
sold him off to Riddle? Is it why he married Harry? Was he expecting Harry to willingly
subject himself to pregnancy and childbirth?
Riddle laughed.
"Shouldn't you know?" he asked, eyes focused on Harry. "Unless you tell me why you don't
know any of these, I don't feel inclined to tell you anything more."
"I just don't remember," Harry said, and judging by Riddle's expression, he didn't believe
him.
There was a soft knock on the door. Barty slowly opened the door and stuck his head into the
room.
"I am sorry to interrupt Minister, but we are going to be late," he said anxiously.
"We are ready to go, Barty," Riddle told the man curtly. "Let's go, darling."
He held Harry's hand, and Harry allowed him because he was too shocked to protest. Riddle
pulled out a wand from the pocket of his robes and handed it to Harry.
"Your wand," he explained when Harry gave him a confused look. This wasn't Harry's wand.
It was an unfamiliar wand. Harry took it gingerly moving it in his grip, but the wand didn't
feel right. "And for the record, I would never give you any potions without your knowledge."
Riddle glanced at him wistfully and nodded. His posture was stiff, and Harry could see that
behind the carefully concealed demeanour, Riddle was stressed and exhausted. It was strange
to see the man so human, but then again this wasn't Voldemort. Harry told himself it wasn't
fair to treat Riddle as if he was Voldemort. However, he couldn't shake away the feelings of
anger every time he saw the man and was reminded of the monster who destroyed his life.
They used the floo and were transported into the Ministry. As soon as they stepped out of the
fireplace, they were greeted by the blinding flash of cameras and questions being sprung on
them from all sides. Tom pulled him closer and then mumbled a spell quietly that dimmed the
camera flashes.
"Are you okay?" he asked Harry, putting his arm forward to prevent any of the journalists
from grabbing Harry. Harry was confused by the man's behaviour but nodded. Riddle seemed
to at least care about his husband, and Harry felt a tiny twinge of guilt for lying to the man,
but he wasn't crazy to tell him his husband was dead, and Harry had taken over his body.
"The news about my husband's pregnancy has been fabricated by Rita Skeeter," Tom
announced. "We need to keep this under wraps before it evolves into something bigger."
There were murmurs and gasps as everyone's eyes went to Harry. Harry had never felt this
bare. It was as if these people had peeled off all of his clothes and were watching him under a
magnifying glass. He seemed to be given a lot of unwanted attention.
"Sir," one of Tom's staff members addressed the man. "Taking into account the current
circumstances, the news about your spouse's pregnancy is an excellent opportunity to turn the
public opinion in our favour. Given the public's high interest in Mr Potter-Riddle, the
pregnancy and the child would strengthen your position among the people as well as the elite
and the older wizarding families."
"I strongly advise you to make the rumours true and have a child," the man said.
"Yes, leave me out of that conversation completely," Harry said unable to hold himself back.
"Because whether I get knocked up and have a child is up to my husband's staff. It seems this
family planning discussion doesn't need my input at all."
He wasn't even sure why he had accepted Riddle's position as his husband, but he got more
upset by the fact that everyone, even Riddle's associates were trying to decide things for him.
No wonder the other Harry was behaving like a menace. The man was stripped of any
agency.
"My apologies, Mr Potter-Riddle," Rabastan hurried to say, but Harry waved his hands.
He needed to breathe a fresh gulp of air, maybe have some coffee or something. Harry was
done. He rubbed his chest, trying to calm his heart. If he stayed here, would he be expected to
have children with Tom? The idea made him feel all kinds of horror. Harry didn't know if he
wanted children. He was never sure he would live to his adulthood.
The Ministry cafeteria was empty. He could have called elves working here to bring him
coffee, but an enchanted vending machine standing in the corner captured his attention. It
seemed more Muggle technology was utilised in this reality than in his original one. Harry
rushed towards it and realised that there were biscuits and coffee available. Just for the
novelty of it, he reached out for his pocket and pulled a couple of knuts.
"Look at that," a voice coming from behind him sneered. "His Highness is here all by
himself. Do you know what kind of trouble I got in because of you?"
Harry abruptly turned around and stared at Nott. The tosser was leering at him.
"Your psycho husband almost killed me," Nott said, angrily twisting his face.
Harry sighed and turned back to the machine, pushing the buttons for the snacks he wanted,
ignoring Nott altogether. He had no idea what was the git's business with the previous Harry,
but that Harry was dead and the new Harry couldn't be bothered to involve himself in any of
that rubbish.
"You are such an uppity bitch," Nott said, suddenly grabbing Harry and twirling him around
so he could face him. "Still, you let that psycho Mudblood knock you up."
"Move your hands," Harry ordered, narrowing his eyes at where Nott was still holding him.
"Move the fuck away from me before I knock you out."
The fuckhead laughed at Harry. Harry was pissed and was itching to get the anger out of his
system. If Nott continued behaving like a proper twat, Harry was going to hand him his arse.
"You've got a lot of bottle to speak to me like that," Nott smirked. "I suppose it's why
Gellert's into you. Wonder what he'll think when he sees the news about you falling up the
duff."
Harry grabbed Nott's arm and abruptly twisted it upwards, making him yelp from pain and
fall back surprised. The idiot reached for his wand, but Harry was waiting for him to draw
wands and brought out his new wand and hurled Nott against the wall. He hit his head and
fell down unconscious.
"Mr Riddle?" Ron was looking at Harry. Harry blinked. Ron was wearing his Auror uniform.
Harry just assaulted Nott in front of the head Auror who was no longer his friend. Ron was
staring at the body lying unconscious on the ground.
Harry laughed. The machine beeped and snacks fell down. Harry turned around and grabbed
the biscuit bars.
"Minister asked me to come and make sure you were safe," Ron offered as an explanation
and stared at Harry almost wistfully.
"Oh! Thanks! Here, have some," Harry gave him one of the bars. "I know you like these
ones."
Ron shifted to take the offered snack but hesitated as if wondering how Harry could know he
liked them. It seemed some things remained the same no matter the universe.
"I remember you liking these from Hogwarts," he said.
"Oh, thank you, Harry... I mean, Mr Riddle," Ron blushed and almost turned the colour of his
own hair. "I can't believe you remember it. My sister, Ginny, she always talks about you."
"Harry's fine," Harry said with a smile. His heart was beating so fast as he felt a strange
longing, being so close to one of his best friends and not being able to tell him how much he
missed him. "Yeah, I saw Ginny the other day. Say hi to her from me. I doubt we will see
each other with all that is going on."
"I will," Ron smiled. "By the way, I was very impressed with your knowledge yesterday. You
noticed something my Aurors didn't. Um... well, we need to go back. The official speech
given by the Minister will start any moment and..."
"Right," Harry said, moving towards the exit, but paused to gesture towards Nott still
unconscious on the floor. "What about him?"
"Oh, you don't need to worry about him," Ron said. "I will have one of my men come and
pick him up and take him to Saint Mungos."
Harry nodded and walked with Ron. He didn't know what to say because there wasn't
anything he could say. This Ron knew him as a completely different person. Harry was
constantly reminded of how lonely he was.
"I've read the news," Ron spoke, filling the silence with his voice. "Skeeter's article was
messed up. I can't imagine what it feels like to have that kind of public scrutiny on you. And
all of these pressure and expectations from strangers thinking they can have input on your
life."
"Oh, and here are your cards for the speech," Ron said, handing him a stack of cards.
"Crouch gave them to me. He wanted to give them to you personally, but the Minister had
other errands for him to run."
Tom stared at the bookshelves in front of him, listening to his advisors. If only things went
smoothly and people didn't try to thwart his plans, he wouldn't have to punish anyone. Now
he had to teach Skeeter a lesson on what happens to those who interfere in his life.
Weasley walked in, accompanying his husband. Tom looked up, and their eyes met. This man
wasn't his husband. Tom was sure of that. He had no idea about his Alluran heritage, but the
curious thing was that he had no idea about the Alluran bloodline at all. Most wizards had a
pretty good understanding of what a lurne was and what kind of powerful magic they had.
Harry had no idea. It was as if he wasn't even from this world. Tom was coming to suspect
that the truth about Harry was simpler than he thought.
There was only one way to test his theory and that involved undressing his pretty husband.
He looked so fragile and delicate, but that was just the shell; behind those arresting eyes hid a
little monster that would bite one's head off if they stepped on its tail. Tom watched him as he
moved gracefully towards him, capturing the attention of his men who watched Harry like
prehistoric men would watch a celestial storm unfolding in the night sky and couldn't help
but feel insignificant in the face of the greatness of the distant stars.
Tom noted that Weasley was holding the wrappers of the same biscuit Harry still had in his
hand. He narrowed his eyes at the Auror, but the redhead didn't notice him—his attention was
fixed on Harry. Harry sat on the sofa close to him, placed his speech cards on the desk and
unwrapped the biscuit.
"Want some?" he asked innocently, breaking the snack in half and stretching the other to him.
Tom smiled. He didn't eat anything of that sort.
"Thank you, darling," he said, taking it off Harry's hands and watching how the men and
women surrounding them were devouring their interaction with their eyes.
This was a different Harry Potter. This man was kind and caring but had a temper of the
Fiendfyre.
"The press is waiting in the Atrium," Barty told him, inclining his head to nearly whisper into
his ear. "It's time, Minister."
Tom nodded. He got up and reached for Harry. The pretty pureblood lurne gave him his hand,
and they walked out of his office. The rest of the staff hurried to follow them to the Atrium,
including the Aurors providing the security detail for them.
The photographers insistently started snapping pictures of them. Tom stood forward as the
barrage of questions kept spilling from their mouths. He lifted his hand, forcing a thin wave
of magic into the air and commanding silence.
"Today, we gather here with heavy hearts, as we witness the appalling depths to which our
enemies sink. They have not only attacked our values but targeted the most innocent, the
most vulnerable among us. In this moment of devastation, I stand before you, not just as your
Minister, but as a resilient soul who shall not be broken by this cowardly acts of destruction,"
Tom spoke in a well-measured tone, making clear eye contact with all the reporters and the
gathered public.
He had their attention. It took him years to harden himself, to make himself a man whose
voice would be heard, regardless of what his critics and enemies thought. Tom Riddle didn't
fit, but he didn't need to fit; he clawed his place with blood and sweat and earned what he
had.
Tom could feel Harry's attentive eyes on him. He could feel the way the pretty man was
watching him as if almost fascinated. Harry was standing by his side, and Tom wanted him
there. He wanted this man by his side, not the airheaded pureblood socialite who scoffed and
turned up his nose at everyone he considered lower than him. No, Tom wanted this resilient,
strong-willed absolutely reckless version.
The journalists were recording, so he turned to Harry and held his hand. Harry stared at him
startled, but didn't pull his hand away. There were gasps. He rarely showed public affection
or any kind of intimacy. The flash of camera lights became blinding.
"To the cowards who thought they could crush the dreams and hopes of innocent children, let
me remind you that an attack on the vulnerable is an attack on our entire society. You may
have razed the physical structure to the ground, but you will never destroy the foundation of
compassion, resilience, and justice upon which it was built. Wizards and magic will forever
live on," Tom declared. "The terrorists behind this disgusting act have been apprehended and
justice will be served, and to those that hide behind these criminals, know that your days are
numbered."
Harry was still holding his hand when he finished his speech.
"Minister, could you comment on the recent interview given by Mr Grindelwald?" someone
else shouted. "You have been heavily criticised for the slow response to the attack. Do you
have any response to that criticism?"
"Look, lady, it's my turn to speak," Harry said, pushing Tom aside and pulling out the cards.
Tom stared at Harry, scandalised. "Clearly, you weren't there yesterday, or you wouldn't open
your mouth to bitch about the Minister's response. He was the only one helping people and
fighting against the nutjobs attacking us."
Tom didn't know if he should admonish his husband or just let him continue. The reporter
seemed to be so taken aback by Harry's interference that she just stared at the gorgeous lurne
with a gaping mouth. Harry shuffled the cards, trying to give his words of support that were
prepared by Tom's cabinet.
"Mr Potter," Skeeter called with a smile. "How is the joy of the pregnancy?"
Tom saw how Harry's pretty face scrunched up in irritation then a mocking smile played on
his lips.
"I'm positively beaming with joy. Don't miss the next episode when I give birth to a unicorn,"
Harry snarked. The smile dropped from Skeeter's face.
"Harry," Barty handed Harry a strange tiny flower that resembled henbane. "I didn't know
you liked these flowers ."
"I don't," Harry mumbled, gripping the flower in his hand, and walked towards Skeeter.
The photographers went crazy, taking pictures of Harry up close. They had never been
allowed to be that close to his husband before. Tom sighed. This was going to end in a
tantrum of some kind. He stepped forward to stop Harry, but the man simply held Skeeter's
hand. Skeeter stared up at Harry who was taller than her but was still much more delicate,
and blushed awkwardly.
"Ms Skeeter, you wrote in your article that your correspondent was able to confirm my
pregnancy with someone close to us. Who was it?" Harry asked sweetly.
What was he trying to do? Tom had advised him not to create additional noise around
Skeeter's slander. He was going to take care of the problem with her later.
"Oh, no one really," Rita laughed, still holding Harry's hand. "I made it up to make the news
more solid."
Tom raised an eyebrow. People gasped. Harry didn't seem surprised at all by the response as
if he was expecting her to tell the truth.
"I mean, I can't reveal the name of my sources," Skeeter hurried to say, realising her mistake.
As soon as the words left her mouth she screamed and blood started pouring from her nose.
"Do not lie," Harry squeezed her hand. "Why did you write that I was pregnant?"
"I..." Skeeter was struggling, everyone was watching the situation unfold and was in no hurry
to interfere.
"I made it up, okay!" Rita confessed as another glob of blood dripped from her nose. "I saw
the picture with you and the Minister and thought it would make a good story."
"Did the Minister or anyone in his office ask you to lie and make up this story?" Harry
demanded.
"No," Skeeter cried. Harry let go of her hand. The flower was burnt. It fell down on the
ground and Harry reached for a handkerchief and cleaned Skeeter's face off the blood
smeared on her mouth, under her nose.
There were murmurs and chatter and everyone was watching Skeeter.
"I am very sorry for what just happened and what happened yesterday," Harry said, dropping
the cards in one of Tom's aid's hands. "I hope no one will have to suffer for lies of other
people and desire for power."
Tom closed his eyes with his palm. Fascinating, deadly, beautiful and still a major headache.
He stepped forward, grabbed his husband's arm and pulled him towards himself.
"What are you doing?" he murmured, while politely waving at the public and turning Harry
around so they could leave. "What kind of magic was that? I have never seen it. What did you
do?"
"I have learned it from the worst," Harry said through gritted teeth, trying to push him away.
Tom only shook his head and clutched Harry's hands tighter.
"That was rash, but I would be lying if I said I didn't enjoy blood on that woman's face," Tom
commented with amusement, causing his husband to bristle with annoyance for some reason,
as if his approval was the worst insult.
They walked back to his office. He had a lot of work to do. James Potter would come to see
him soon. He would need to ask Barty to take Harry home and watch him.
An Auror was approaching them at a high speed. It looked like it was Rockwood.
"Minister, Sir," the man stopped in front of him, breathless. "The convoy transporting the
apprehended criminals got attacked by dementors who had escaped Azkaban. They have
kissed all the criminals. No one has escaped unscathed."
"Dispatch Aurors to take care of the dementors and transport the criminals to the medical
wing of the Azkaban," Tom said coldly. "Contact Daily Prophet and have them report on the
accident."
"You knew," Harry whispered, pulling his hand away. "You knew about the dementor attack
even before he said anything. You were not surprised as if you were expecting to get this
news. You did this."
Tom's heart started beating faster. There was nothing else that mattered in his life than to
maintain his power and squash anyone who dared to threaten his reign. He did what he had to
do. He did what his father-in-law expected him to do. These men couldn't go unpunished, if
he let them simply see a prison time in Azkaban without any retaliation, his enemies would
know he was weak.
Tom reached for the nearby door handle and pulled it open. He stepped inside, grabbing
Harry's hands and forcing him inside with him. There were people inside working.
"Minister," Lestrange got up as well as some of the other men in the room.
"Leave us," Tom commanded. His men stared at his pretty husband, at the way he was
holding the man's hand and quickly scrambled to leave.
He shut the door tightly as soon as they were alone. Harry was glaring at him with his vivid
green eyes, as if he had just emerged from Tom's fantasies and stepped into his office. It felt
as though Harry was a sinful distraction that would tempt him to his death.
"You killed these men," Harry screamed, breathing hard. "Just when I was thinking that you
are..."
"I didn't do anything to them that they didn't deserve," Tom told Harry with anger. "They
tried to kill so many innocent people—"
"They should have faced justice," Harry said, moving away from him, cupping his pretty
face, "but you can't decide their fate single-handedly condemning them to fate worse than
death."
"You don't know what you are talking about," Tom told him bitterly. "There is no justice in
this world. There is just power and whoever has that power has the right to decide what
justice is. You have lived your life coddled and sheltered from the real world, and you have
no idea that the only thing that matters today is that these people received a message. A
message that they can't step over me. They will think twice next time."
"You are mental," Harry yelled. "I don't care about your power trips. The real power is to do
the right thing. Any twat can give orders condemning others to death, it takes real strength to
do what's right. And you know nothing about me."
"Oh, that's right, I don't, baby," he mocked, stepping closer. "You are right. I don't know who
the bloody hell you are. Do you know what my husband would have done today? He would
have complained about coming here because it is beneath him to care about Mudbloods and
other poor filth. Then he would have cried and whined about how boring the whole affair
with the reporters is and demanded to go on a shopping trip to France because he is so bloody
exhausted from standing in front of the common public for twenty minutes."
Harry went silent. Tom could hear the man's heart beating like drums, his chest was lowering
and rising.
"Nothing to say to that, princess?" he continued. "Because that's who the real Harry Potter is
—a spoiled, snobby airhead who cares about no one and nothing. So, who are you?"
Harry pulled out his wand and pointed it at him. "Get back," he ordered.
Tom didn't reach for his wand; he stared at Harry with a firm expression on his face, then cast
an immobilisation spell. When the spell hit him, Harry's eyes widened. It was clear he wasn't
expecting the spell and didn't even attempt to safeguard himself against it.
"You are not my husband, but you are Harry Potter, so there is only one explanation for this,"
he said, approaching the man.
He placed his hands on Harry's shoulders, gently moving them towards his chest and slowly
unbuttoning the buttons of his shirt.
"There is just one way to know for sure," Tom told him softly, tracing his hands over Harry's
chest chest. "Tell me, Harry will I find on your body what I am looking for?"
Tom's hands froze on the man. He moved back and pressed his lips into a thin line. "Then tell
me the truth."
Harry's anger bubbled to rage, and the magic binding him in place faded. Finding himself
free of the binding spell, Harry reached for his wand and cast a blasting spell. Tom threw a
shield against it and pulled out his own wand.
"We can do this all day," he told Harry. "I need the truth."
"The truth?" Harry laughed. "What truth? That you are a psycho? That you just deprived a
bunch of men of their soul. Do you even know what it feels like to get your soul sucked out
of your body by a dementor? Do you have any idea what it feels like?"
They threw spells at each other. Tom could tell Harry's words about dementors came from an
experience, and it intrigued him even more.
"Whatever they got, they deserved it," he spat back. "The orphanage yesterday was empty.
Just imagine if they thought they could do this when we had all of these orphaned children
there. This was a message to let them know what will happen to them if they continue."
"Oh, don't pretend you care about children," Harry scoffed. "You are trying to abduct some of
these children from their Muggle parents and make them grow up in a clinical environment
where the love and care they receive is just a job—someone's job that they get paid for. Do
you understand what that means to grow up without anyone who cares for you? Huh? No one
who will sit by your side when you are sick, hurt your knees or have a bad dream? Do you
even know...?"
The glass on the bookcase cabinets shattered into pieces as Harry's rage dripped from his
words, and then he dropped his wand on the ground as if defeated. He looked like he didn't
have any strength left him to fight anymore.
"Yes," Tom told him quietly after a moment of silence. "I know what it means to be alone.
And I wished I grew up with wizards instead of being poked at by doctors at the Muggle
orphanage who wanted to dissect me and see what was wrong with me."
"And here you are, killing people and depriving children of their parents," Harry whispered.
"So did you want power for this?"
The shards of glass flew up towards him and pressed against his neck, ready to strike. Harry
was doing this, wordlessly and wandlessly. He looked angry and at the same time, there was
grief and sadness and fear in his eyes. Tom leaned back, trying to move away from the sharp
edges, pressed against his throat.
"I grew up alone, surrounded by other unwanted, unfortunate souls like me, and every day
was a war for food and comfort," Tom said, recalling his days at the Muggle orphanage. "I
had no idea who I was, where I was from, and who my parents were. I kept wishing to be
taken by a family like the other kids, but I was too strange and odd for people to like me. It
didn't matter how hard I tried to be nice and well-behaved or how well I studied, I was a
strange child that incited an eerie revulsion in others."
Harry was just staring at him plainly. Something was happening with him, but Tom had no
idea what.
"When I learned that I have magic, I thought, finally, I will be with people who will accept
me and understand me. I will be with my kind. Naive and childish! Muggles and wizards
alike place importance on who you are, what connections you have, and who your family is.
If you do not have any, they will consider you an inferior scum who does not deserve to
breathe around them, lest you pollute their air," he told Harry.
"I could wave my hands right now and turn all of them into dust." Tom continued. "That's
because I have power. I also have the power to make sure children with magic can grow up
surrounded by magic unlike me. I don't want to separate the parents from their children, but
that is the price of things you need to pay when you don't have enough power. Your father
was rather pleased with this plan but only because it involved all the children of magical
heritage not just those without any parents. That's what it means not to have enough power."
The glass shards dropped down. Harry stared at him for a moment and then his pretty
husband lunged forward, grabbed his face and kissed him.
His lips were soft and fragile. He could feel the glide of wet, silky smooth lips moving over
his own and his hands came to wrap around the man's thin waist and lift him up in the air. He
tasted like sweet fruits and flowers, the scent of snowdrops poured into his nostrils. Harry
wrapped his legs around him, and Tom pressed him against the wall.
Shivers spread over his body and his blood rushed through his veins, dopamine and adrenalin
released into his system, and his pupils dilated. He felt Harry's hand pushing at his chest and
when he opened his eyes, the pretty thing dropped down, grabbed his wand and ran out.
"Harry, wait," he rushed after him, ignoring his men waiting outside. They looked like they
knew what was going on, but didn't dare to comment.
Harry's heart was beating in his chest so wildly and abruptly that he was sure it would drop
into his stomach any second. What was he thinking, kissing Tom bloody Riddle? Harry was
out of his bloody mind. Just when he thought the git wasn't so bad, the man went ahead and
proved him wrong. And then... then, when Harry was ready to end it all, he had to open his
mouth and say things, making Harry feel bloody stupid things.
"Harry, wait," he heard Tom's voice and his stupid heart skipped a beat.
It had been less than a week and he was already falling for this nonsense? Was Harry so
depraved needing love and attention that he was ready to throw himself into his enemy's arms
at any given chance? The guy was no Voldemort, but bloody fuck if he didn't try hard to be
an evil, manipulative son of a bitch.
Harry rushed through the corridors into the Atrium so he could apparate. He didn't want to
stay in the Ministry any longer and be forced to see Tom Riddle's stupid, handsome face.
He could feel Tom catching up with him. How the fuck was he so fast? Tom caught his arm
when he apparated. They landed in the middle of the Muggle London. Harry needed a drink.
"You are right," Harry told him. "I am not your husband. That guy is dead. I don't know what
happened to him. But he is gone. And since you know this, there is no need for you to
pretend anymore. Just go and live your life. I won't show up and ruin anything."
"I don't want to," Tom said, holding him tightly so he couldn't move away. Muggles stopped
to look at them, particularly at Harry. It seemed the other Harry's looks attracted wild
attention no matter where he went. "You are still my husband, and you have our marital
bonds."
"Isn't James Potter going to be there to meet you soon?" Harry grumbled, trying to move
away from Tom. "Aren't you supposed to be there to meet him? Please leave."
"Are you mad at me?" he asked. Harry blinked momentarily confused and taken back by the
question.
"Are you serious?" he shook his head in disbelief. "You find out I am not your husband, and
you are asking me if I am mad at you? No other questions?"
"You kissed me and then ran out," Tom complained. "Other questions can wait. Also, you are
my husband."
Harry groaned. The embarrassment he felt a moment ago dwindled and was replaced with
indignation.
"Hey, any problem, mate?" some man asked, approaching them. "Is this blockhead bothering
you?"
Harry looked at the Muggle stranger who was ogling him and glaring at Tom. Tom glared
back irritated.
"Step away before I knock your teeth out of your mouth," Riddle threatened in a cold tone.
The man lifted his hands in peace and walked away. It looked like whatever interest he had in
Harry was unmatched by his fear of Tom's menacing face.
"I am not mad at you," Harry said. "I am mad at myself for..."
Harry stopped talking as he noticed a very old man barely standing on his feet, holding
tightly onto the cane, staring at Tom.
"My goodness..." the old man grabbed Tom's arm to the man's surprise. "You look like you
could be... yes, you look like me in my youth."
Harry blinked confused, wondering who this Muggle man was, and hoped that Tom wouldn't
curse him, he clearly suffered from old age dementia. He was very old and frail. It was a
mystery that he was still standing on his feet. He was dressed in a finely tailored suit and was
well-groomed.
"Are you alright, sir?" Tom asked, startled by the sudden appearance of the old man.
"You must be his grandson," the old man said slowly, watching Tom with sadness and then
his eyes fell on the wand Tom was holding, and it seemed to only bolster his conviction,
triggering some kind of memory in him. "You are definitely his grandson. You have that
wooden stick just like her."
Shit! Was this Tom's father? Harry internally shook his head. That couldn't be, this man
looked like in his 90s and Tom's father should have been in his late 40s and early 50s. This
man was old. Very old.
"You are confusing me with someone else," Tom told him politely, trying to move the old
man's hands off of his arm.
"Mr Riddle," a man who looked like a bodyguard and was dressed in a suit rushed towards
them. Tom lifted his wand, clearly not recognising the Muggle who was calling his name. But
the Muggle rushed towards the old man and held him to ensure he was steady.
"Mr Riddle, are you alright?" he asked the old man and then turned to Tom. "I am sorry, Sir.
Mr Riddle is unwell."
"Doesn't he look like me, Frank?" the old man asked his Muggle bodyguard. The bodyguard
gave Tom an awkward smile and tried to direct the old man towards the nice car parked on
the side of the street.
"Tell me, son," he asked Tom. "Are you called Tom Riddle too? That's what your grandfather
should have been named. She told me she would name him after me and her father."
"How do you know my name?" There was understanding and realisation in Tom's eyes but he
seemed taken aback and anxious.
"I went back for him," the old man cried. "After, I went back for him. But Merope was dead
and my son was gone. The orphanage told me they lost him. He disappeared."
The old man seemed to be getting more agitated. Tom stared motionless. Harry realised that
this was the first time in his life Tom was seeing someone who might have been related to
him. Based on what Harry knew, this made no sense. The old man said Merope was dead and
his son was gone. Merope was Tom's mother and this man was in his 90s. He couldn't be
Tom's father... unless...
"Sir, your doctor's appointment will start soon, let's go," the bodyguard moved the old man
towards the car and turned to look at Tom and Harry apologetically, his eyes widening
comically when he spotted Harry.
"He knew my name," Tom murmured. "He recognised my wand. He is a Muggle but he
knows of magic."
The old man got into the car, and the car drove away.
"We can find him and see if he's related to you," Harry offered.
"Maybe another time," he said, taking advantage of Harry's change of attitude towards him.
"Let's go, I can't believe I am in Muggle London with you."
"Well, I came here to drink," Harry told him, not liking how he was being roped to stay with
the man. "Before Skeeter gives me another pregnancy, I better enjoy some alcohol."
"Are you serious?" Tom laughed. "Okay, let's go, I know just the place."
Harry sighed but went along with him. He kissed him. Tom kissed him back. This was bad.
They walked down the street and then a golden snitch came flying towards them at high
speed. Harry's instincts kicked in and he jumped up and grabbed the snitch. The moment he
touched it, the two of them were forced out of the Muggle street and dropped in the middle of
a forest. The snitch was a Portkey, and Harry never had a stroke of good luck when these
things were involved.
"Where are we?" he asked. Tom had his wand out and was watching the misty surroundings
for danger.
"Well, well, see what we caught here," a voice said. "The Minister himself with his lovely
husband."
Thank you guys for all the amazing support and love you have given to this fic.
makes me incredibly happy and motivated to write more stories and also work on
❤️ It
editing this work. Please let me know what you think of this chapter. Which parts did
you like most? And if you have any predictions or guesses of who the old man is, share
them in the comments, I love to read your thoughts.
Also, for those of you who have voted for the 1st story where Harry time travels to the
past to seduce Tom and prevent him from becoming Voldemort, this story has been
posted as well. You can read it here: Devil's Trill
Chapter 9
Chapter Notes
Thank you guys for all the wonderful comments you have sent me and all the love you
have shown to this story. I hope you like the new chapter.
Thank you Nakamura_Naomi for your translation of this work into Russian.
find the translation here
❤️ You can
"The Minister?" another voice interjected, tone laced with irritation. "I specifically instructed
you to bring only the boy. Why in Merlin's name did you drag that bastard here?"
"They were together," the other man complained. "What was I supposed to do?"
Tom grasped Harry's arm and attempted to apparate them, but the magic rebounded, the spell
colliding with the anti-apparition wards. They were trapped here. He couldn't see the faces of
their abductors. The darkness had enveloped everything; the towering trees encircling them
were engulfed in a dense blanket of mist, obscuring any hint of sunlight attempting to filter
through the dense foliage. Tom aimed his wand at the men advancing towards him and Harry.
"Who are you?" he demanded, casting a Lumos and illuminating their immediate
surroundings with bright light.
Several wizards were standing in front of them ready for a fight. Tom could discern from
their robes that they were aligned with the group responsible for the attack on the orphanage.
Who were these people working for? Why were they trying to capture Harry?
"Now, Minister," the man with a shabby beard clicked his tongue in disapproval. "We do not
want to hurt you or your dear husband. We just need to take him off your hands. In fact,
nothing will happen here today if you simply comply and let us take him with us."
Tom narrowed his eyes at the men. What kind of game were they playing? Harry stiffened
beside him, and Tom sensed the subtle movement of a wand sliding forward. Harry's
movements were so elegant and precise that none of the others even noticed. Tom lifted his
hand and gently patted Harry's back, almost as if in reassurance.
"Very brave but very stupid of you to try to abduct my husband," he said with a sigh, gripping
his wand, prepared to fire a barrage of spells at the slightest provocation. "Not only are you
imbeciles committing treason right now, but you are also way over your heads. You think you
can portkey me here, threaten my husband, and I will just let you leave this forest alive?"
"No reason to get upset, Minister," the man laughed. "We won't hurt your husband. We
merely want to reunite him with the man he truly loves."
Tom tilted his head to assess the man in front of him. Surely, this wasn't one of his husband's
many lovers finally getting fed up with the prospect of sharing him. Well, they were too late;
his husband was gone, and Tom wasn't giving this Harry to anyone. This one belonged to
him, and if Tom was right, he was sent here by Fate itself to meet Tom.
"I am not going anywhere with you, discount Death Eaters," Harry said, an exasperated
expression twisting his beautiful face. "Give me the bloody name of the twat who has sent
you here because I really want to know who I should be hexing six ways to Sunday."
Tom's lips curled in amusement, hearing the mouthiness of his new husband directed at these
scoundrels. It was just another confirmation that this Harry had no idea of his previous self's
philandering endeavours. Tom's theory about what happened to his husband was being
bolstered by increasing evidence. The body was the same with all the magical ties tethered to
it, but the mind was different.
Wizards could not occupy the bodies of others. The body would simply reject the foreign soul
and would fight against it to the point of rotting and decomposing its own cells. It was why
soulbonds as a form of ancient dark marital magic were banned even though it simply
involved fusing the soul of one magic-bearer to the soul of another. There were documented
cases of such nuptial rituals resulting in death, as the two souls were incomparable. Although,
it involved simply fusing the souls together, not replacing one with another completely and
outrightly.
That left only one possibility: the soul of another Harry Potter. The man confirmed under a
very strong Veritaserum that he was Harry Potter. Harry's body wouldn't reject the compatible
soul of himself. Any other soul attempting to inhabit someone else's body would lead to
decay and deterioration.
Tom was interested in soul magic in his early years at Hogwarts. He had even considered
venturing into the dark side of soul magic and experimenting with it. He wasn't sure what
exactly made him change his mind, but it was probably the fact that it would have been too
easy to mutilate himself for immortality and invincibility. He wanted all of his snotty
pureblood classmates to be forced to bow in front of him just as he was, a mere mortal, with
no name or heritage, but still in possession of such power that they would have to chew on
their pride and recognise him.
In retrospect, he realised that he had spent his formative years obsessed with desiring respect
from people who were not ever worth his time and attention. He understood now that he was
where he was thanks to his anger and vulnerability for being treated like a lesser person due
to pseudo-traditional elitist beliefs about blood and purity.
"You don't need to pretend here, princess," the man laughed, making Harry bristle in
annoyance.
"Merlin, I am so sick and tired of all of your fucking bullshit," he said, closing his eyes,
thumb slowly stroking the smooth surface of the wand. "Stop patronising me, you pieces of
shit, and just give me the name of the bastard who hired you, or I'm leaving."
The men exchanged a confused look. Clearly, not what they expected from the pureblood
lurne. Tom stared at them with glee, barely holding his laughter.
"It's Gellert," the man said. "He did say you are a feisty thing, but man, he understated a little.
Now, he is waiting for you, so you can ditch this bastard and come with us, and we will take
you to him."
Tom stared at Harry, trying to catch his reaction, but as expected, his new husband didn't
seem aware of anything and stared blankly at the men.
They nodded in response, smirking and exchanging knowing looks with each other. Tom
tightened the hold on his wand. The corners of his lips twitched. These idiots had just given
away the name of the man who was behind the attack, and they were not even realising it.
They should have changed their robes if they wanted to keep the identity of their leader
hidden. They must have been confident that they would be able to overpower Tom.
Oh, Tom couldn't wait. Grindelwald's little spawn had been a thorn in his side, and he was
looking for a proper opportunity to squash the bastard under his shoes.
"GG? That's what it was? What the bloody hell was I thinking? The man is ancient.
Replacing one Dark Lord with another" Harry murmured, in a barely audible tone then
glanced at Tom and shook his head. "Never mind."
"I think they mean Grindelwald Jr, baby," Tom laughed, staring at his new husband's horrified
face.
"Well, I don't care. The Jr part doesn't suddenly make it better, in fact, now that I think about
it, it's suddenly worse," Harry seemed irritated beyond words. Tom couldn't help but stare at
his little expressions with amusement. "I am not going with you anywhere, and you can go
and tell this Gellert that if he wanted a meeting with me, he should have made an
appointment or sent a fucking owl like a normal person, instead of sending his army of
kidnappers."
"Well, too bad, princess," the man growled. "Because I don't care about your lover's quarrel
and drama. I was ordered to take you to him, and I will, whether you want it or not."
A gust of light left the man's wand, the spell hurtling through the air towards Harry, but Harry
deflected it easily and countered with a hex of his own. The others lifted up their wands and
attacked. Tom was quick to block their curses with strong defensive shields. He wasn't
attacking yet as he wanted to keep his attention on Harry and make sure to protect him if
necessary. But Harry was magnificent; his stance was perfect, and Tom had a feeling he had
duelled frequently, perhaps as a well-trained Auror or even a Hit-Wizard.
Spell after spell was being fired, and Harry was able to keep several of these wizards on their
toes. None of them were expecting this kind of response, clearly. Tom was enjoying this too
much. He wanted to see that scumbag Gellert's face when his little lackeys returned to him
and told him that Harry Potter rejected him.
"I am so sick and tired of everyone telling me what to do and how to behave," Harry shouted,
casting a blasting spell that sent the wizards flying and knocked a couple of them out. "Since
I opened my eyes here, everyone and their mother is ordering me around like I am a bloody
child."
Harry's magic enveloped a tree and yanked it out by the roots. Tom watched fascinated as
Harry levitated the tree with force and hurled it at the advancing wizards.
He was perfect.
Tom could feel his pulse quickening with excitement. The elegance and dexterity of Harry
wielding his magic through a wand was mesmerising to watch. Every movement was
calculated and precise, with fluidity that showed years of training and mastery.
Tom couldn't take his eyes away; Harry's agility allowed him to swiftly parry incoming
attacks, seamlessly blend offensive and defensive spells, and strike with impeccable timing
and precision. With each curse, he moved effortlessly, showcasing a combination of speed,
control, and finesse that made him a formidable and skilled duelist.
"Not so tough now, are you, you fucking assholes?" Harry's magic was like a raging storm,
pouring out and sweeping everything in its path. "Well, what are you waiting for, huh? Come
take me to whoever the fuck is your stupid master."
"As amusing and entertaining as it is to watch my husband bring you worthless miscreants to
your knees," Tom said, his eyes cold and unwavering as the defeated men struggled to regain
their composure. "I believe it's time to bring this little charade to an end. We've had a rather
long day, and I have no desire to prolong our time in your unsavory presence."
Tom cast a series of offensive spells and unlike Harry, he didn't shy away from curses that did
real damage.
"Really? And what am I supposed to do with them, huh?" Tom mocked, continuing to hex
and curse the men. "You are naive if you think that these people deserve any of your
compassion. They would kidnap you and sell you if someone offered a good price."
A dark curse cast by one of the men missed Harry and hit the ground, cracking the surface
and making it brittle. The plants growing there instantly died. Harry hurled a disarming
charm at him, but the wizard blocked it. This one seemed more experienced than the others.
He cast several other spells, but Harry managed to counteract them and avoid them.
Tom's attention turned back towards his own opponents. He was a skilled duelist but not
many were aware of this. Most ministers taking the office had very little combat experience.
There were a couple of ex-Aurors who took the Ministerial post and could fight, but they
were advanced in age by the time they reached the position of a Minister.
In the midst of him casting a slicing hex, he felt Harry's hand on his arm. He turned around,
confused, only to be pushed aside by Harry. One of the attackers had sneaked behind him and
was holding a large bulb of water that seemed to be expanding as it was being thrown
towards him. He stumbled away and reached to pull Harry with him, but the blob of water
engulfed his husband and as soon as it did, the mass water started enlarging.
He tried casting Finite, but that seemed to make the mass of water even larger. Harry was
trapped inside, drowning. It looked like he was trying to move, but with every movement, the
water was growing. Taking advantage of his distraction the others left standing tried to attack
him, but he blasted them away. In his anger and panic, he channelled so much magical force
that rendered all of them unconscious in one go.
"The doubling charm," the man laughed when Tom tried to conjure a burst of wind to blow
away the water.
"End it right now," Tom demanded. "You'll kill him. I am sure even your master doesn't want
that."
"Leave and let me take him," the man said, slowly moving back as Tom kept closing in on
him. "And I will let the spell down."
"So you'd rather have him die than be with someone else?" the man mumbled, panicking
because Tom's movements didn't halt. "Very greedy, Minister."
"You are not taking him anywhere," Tom's voice went low. "End the spell right now or I will
end you gladly, and the spell will die with you. The choice is yours."
The man cast a hex that Tom easily blocked. His eyes turned towards Harry, and rage babbled
inside him. Tom flicked his wand transfiguring the broken branches lying on the floor into
large snakes.
The snakes hurried to obey him. Tom felt nothing inside, not amusement and not glee at
seeing the man's horrified face as the giant creatures slithered towards him. There was a sense
of cold, calculated apathy that drove him to flick his wand and transfigure the man into the
rat that he was before one of the snakes pounced on him and swallowed him.
James Potter always told him that while others couldn't see, he could see what Tom was
capable of, and letting the opportunity of gaining someone like him pass up for a lesser man
but a pureblooded one would be foolish, and he was anything but a fool. And now Tom knew
that deep inside he was just as rotten and broken as people claimed.
The water mass, held by magic and expanding due to the doubling charm, tore into pieces
and dropped on the ground like a cup of water, splashing its droplets on the trampled grass.
Harry's body dropped down with a loud thud.
He cradled his delicate body and cast healing charms. Harry coughed up the water in his
lungs and opened his eyes to stare at Tom. He grabbed Tom's hand, and Tom felt ancient dark
magic surge forth from Harry's hand into his own body, connecting them together. It was
strange, almost like there was a piece of his own magic inside Harry, trying to reach out to
him. His eyes widened when he realised what it was. Their connection was like a lightning
bolt tearing through the air around them, making the misty forest light up with shimmering
light.
"How are you feeling?" Riddle's tone was gentle and cautious as if he was worried about
upsetting a scared child. Harry locked eyes with him; he was sitting on the bed beside Harry,
softly stroking his cheek.
Harry felt a lump in his throat as he recalled the terrifying sensation of drowning. He had
frantically attempted to conjure and cast spells to disperse the water, but each movement only
seemed to cause it to close in on him more tightly. He looked at Riddle, seeing his
emotionless face that somehow was trying to convey concern. Was he really worried about
Harry?
His eyes shifted. He glanced around, his expression darkening with worry. Where the fuck
was he? This wasn't Riddle's home.
"Where are we?" he croaked and cleared his throat. The feeling was unpleasant. "What
happened with the... with those men?"
He watched Riddle's face intently, eyes scanning for every subtle change.
"They have been taken care of, darling," Riddle said, not feeling the slightest bit awkward at
calling him by a pet name. Harry had plainly told him that he wasn't the man's husband, but
Riddle kept insisting on continuing whatever this was. And Harry had kissed him like an
idiot. What was wrong with him? "We are at my flat. I used to live here before we got
married. I didn't want to give it away after getting the Manor. I thought you would be safer
here than back home."
Well, this place was decidedly Muggle—simple furniture, books stacked up on the shelves
and even the TV. He couldn't imagine Tom bloody Riddle, the Muggle-hating Dark Lord,
living in a Muggle flat and having a TV set.
Riddle's hand slid down from Harry's cheek to his chest and down on his leg. Harry realised
that he was wearing a large shirt that didn't belong to him.
"I had to change your clothes," Riddle said as an explanation as if sensing his unease. "You
were soaked."
"You know," he smiled again, this time wistfully, like whatever he was about to say made him
feel sadness, but Harry wasn't sure that he was interpreting Riddle's expressions correctly.
"You have always had very sensitive feet. I always thought it was just you being a spoiled
little brat, but I suppose you weren't whining for no reason."
Harry's face soured. He pulled his hand away, but the man tightened his hold on Harry's hand.
"And do you know what I found on the bottom of your foot, darling?" His smile widened.
Harry sighed. Well, it wasn't like he was trying very hard to hide anything. At this point, he
wasn't even going to stay here. He would just leave, and Riddle could live his life happily
without any husbands getting in his business. Although, he was surprised that Riddle would
even know what to look for. Harry didn't even suspect what happened to him was possible.
"So you know," he whispered. "Good, I have never pretended that I was your husband."
"You keep saying that," Riddle gently rubbed Harry's knuckles. "But you are my husband.
Just look at these marital bonds tethering us together."
He flicked his fingers over Harry's wrist, and the magical threads appeared, shimmering and
bright, handfasting them together. Harry glared at the man and pulled his hand away,
dissipating the magic into the air.
"If you have seen the mark on my foot, you know that I have travelled here from a different
world into the body of your husband," Harry said, his voice getting shaky with anger and
guilt. "And that was possible only because he died right before I transmigrated. So you
should know that the man you married is no longer alive, and these bonds you speak of, they
are just attached to his body. It's amazing how little you care that someone you married and
vowed to love is dead."
"I care that he is dead," Tom said. "Only because that means someone killed that ditzy
airhead, and seeing you parading around alive and well, they might try again."
Harry's face reddened in anger. What was wrong with this man? Was he an actual
psychopath? He pushed Riddle away and tried to get up, but his feet gave way, and he almost
stumbled down. Riddle hurried to catch him and helped him to stand upright.
"Try to lie down, you haven't recovered," he told Harry, trying to pull him back into the bed.
"I have healed you, but being suffocated by magical water has drained you."
"Stop this," Harry slapped Riddle's hand away. "Stop this stupid charade. You don't need to
continue pretending you care about me. We both know you had to do it for whatever you are
gaining from having James Potter as your father-in-law. But you don't need to do it now. I am
planning to leave. You can tell them I died. The abductors killed me."
"I thought I healed you properly. Is your head okay? Do you have a headache or nausea?"
Riddle feigned concern, pissing off Harry. "Are you suffering from some kind of mental
ailment? What is it? You saved me during the orphanage attack, then you kissed me, and then
you attacked me. And the same happened earlier. That spell with the water was intended for
me, but you saved me, knowing it could kill you. So what is it? Why are you so mad at me?"
Shit!
He didn't even know what the fuck he was doing. He had no fucking idea what to feel or how
to live. His life was ruined. His friends were dead. He was alone and alive, and he hated
himself for that. He was supposed to save everyone, not die and resurrect as Tom Riddle's
decorative husband, not wake up one day and see his father's face but be greeted by an
asshole who didn't care about his own son and treated him like a bloody pawn that could be
bartered for power.
Not see his mother as a ditzy, naive woman who didn't understand that her own son didn't
want to marry Tom Riddle and be used as some kind of novelty creature to mutilate his own
body with magic and spells and potions to bear children. Like this nonsense was even
normal.
Fuck, he was so sick, he wanted to cry. Why did he keep going back over and over again and
trying to find momentary comfort in Riddle's arms? The man mistreated him from day one
since he arrived.
Did the other Harry ask to be married to Riddle? No. Did Riddle force his way into that
marriage? Harry wasn't even sure at this point that the other Harry was murdered. A silent
part of him knew that there was a chance Harry had killed himself. All of these people around
and none of them cared about the poor thing. Even the so-called lover, GG, Gellert
Grindelwald Jr, or whatever didn't deign Harry with enough respect to come and get him
himself. He had sent his henchmen who nearly killed him. What did he even do to deserve
this kind of shitty hand at life?
"I am sorry about all of that," he mumbled, trying to calm his nerves by rubbing his temples.
"I shouldn't have kissed you. That was not right considering you didn't know who I was... I
was just... It doesn't matter... I think it's best if we forget about everything and we both go our
separate ways."
"Forget about everything?" Riddle raised an eyebrow. "No, you don't get to come here and
give me a glimpse of what you could be and tell me I should forget about it. I will not lie and
tell your parents that you are dead."
"They are not my parents," Harry protested, ignoring everything else Riddle said. "It's not a
lie. Their son is dead."
Riddle reached down and held his foot, his hand tracing the mark left from the dimensional
travel.
"Harry, do you know that there is only one copy of Travel between Worlds in the whole of
Britain?" he asked softly. "The copy at our home. That's the only one. That's because I was
the one who translated it. Do you think anyone else knows of this possibility? Of a wizard
travelling between realities and worlds? Your father would never believe that you are a Harry
Potter from another world. He would find you, darling, if you disappeared, he would look for
you and I won't lie and tell him that you are dead because I don't want you gone."
Harry's lips twitched. Was Riddle threatening him? Why was he trying to keep Harry here?
What was the point?
"You don't even know me," he said. "So why do you want me to stay here and play house
with you? Pretend that I am your husband and everything is good?"
"I want to know you," he said, staring into his eyes. "And I don't want you to pretend with
me."
"Stay here with me, please," Riddle said. "I can tell that you clearly feel something. I can
tell... don't lie to me and tell me you just want to leave..."
"It's not a lie," Harry shook his head, feeling his throat tightening, wondering if he really
wanted to leave. He kept making up reasons why he needed to stay, why he needed to pretend
to be this world's Harry.
"Oh, but it is, baby," Riddle laughed. "If you wanted to leave, you would have left on day
one. I have seen you. I have seen your strength. You would have been far away if that's what
you wanted."
No, Riddle wasn't right. Harry had his reasons. He didn't have a wand, and he wanted to help.
He couldn't have just left without a wand or when those psychos were attacking innocent
people. He shook his head in denial.
"It's not right," he tried. "I can't... I shouldn't stay here and continue this lie."
Riddle leaned in closer, and Harry felt his cool, icy scent that reminded him of the crystalline
chill of a winter's eve or the frosty kiss of a snowflake on his skin.
"Then tell me that you want me to keep you here," he murmured. "Tell me to make you stay.
If I am forcing you, you have no choice, right? You can't feel guilty about it if you have to
stay here with me."
"I don't want to play that game," Harry shook his head.
"Then don't," Tom pressed his lips against Harry's bare neck. "Don't play any games. Be
honest with yourself and stay here with me. Let me know you. Let me learn everything about
you. The real you."
Harry's heart squeezed in his chest. Tom Riddle was coaxing him so smoothly, drawing him
in and leading him down a path he wanted to follow. It was strange how strongly Harry felt
the pull, almost as if he was losing control of his own thoughts. It was insane how much he
wanted to give in. Harry was mental.
"And your husband," he asked. "The one who died. You are going to just pretend that he
never existed, that he didn't die."
"I will find whoever is responsible for his death," Tom said. "You should help me with it.
Help me catch whoever hurt him."
"Tom," Harry said, using the man's name and it felt so foreign coming from his lips. "None of
this is right."
"Darling, there is no right and wrong in this world. We simply assign labels of right and
wrong to things and sometimes it is arbitrary. And I'm telling you, it feels right for you to stay
with me."
"Okay," he murmured, feeling defeated. "I will stay to help you find your husband's killer."
"I am fine," Harry said. "Feeling just a little bit groggy. I wouldn't mind some tea now."
"There are no house elves here," Tom said, and then as if remembering that this was no
longer his old husband, got up. "There might be some tea in the kitchen. I do not keep much
food here because I don't stay here often."
"That's fine," Harry said. "I can make tea. Just take me to the kitchen."
"That's the last thing I have ever expected to hear from your lips," Tom said amused.
"You do know I am not your husband, right," Harry said, shaking his head as Riddle helped
him to the kitchen. The flat was very small. It seemed to have a small bedroom, a living room
with barely any space and a cramped kitchen. There were books everywhere, even on the
kitchen table.
"Yes, thank you, darling," Tom said, sitting by the table, pushing away the stacks of books.
"Can you not call me that?" Harry asked, rolling his eyes. "Now that you know."
"Not call you what? Darling?" Tom asked. "Of course, baby. If you prefer something else."
"Whatever," Harry shook his head and went through Tom's fridge, trying to find something
edible.
"Why did you do it?" Tom asked suddenly. "You know the ritual for the travel to other
worlds. You must have known how dangerous it was that you could have died."
Harry opened the packet of flour and turned his head to look at Tom. Did he think that Harry
travelled here intentionally?
"It was an accident. I didn't intend to come here or anywhere for that matter," he said,
continuing to go through various ingredients and grabbed a few eggs.
"We knew each other in your world," Tom stated, tilting his head to look at Harry.
Harry grimaced. He didn't want to think about the monster who killed him and his friends.
"Clearly, you knew me. When you saw me on that morning after the Ministry party, I
remember that you were surprised to see me for some reason as if seeing me hurt you. I can
tell that you are feeling guilty about this all because you know I am not the one from your
world," Tom said, staring at Harry.
Harry had no idea about Voldemort. He doubted any spells had hit him. The monster
probably destroyed the rest of Harry's world.
"I don't know if you died. It all happened too fast," he confessed, not wanting to elaborate.
Harry stared at him confused and grimaced. He was showing too much interest in Harry's
original world.
"Well, you were different," he said softly. Tom's eyes remained curious. He looked very
handsome, and Harry had to look away so he wouldn't stare. "Very different."
"You must have loved me very much," Tom said, making Harry's eyes bulge. He coughed and
sputtered.
"What? Why would you say that?" Harry asked, trying to get back his composure.
"You clearly loved me enough in your world to marry me," Tom declared.
Harry dropped the spoon he was holding and went down in panic to grab it. What in the
bloody hell was he talking about?
"You think we were married?" he asked carefully, washing the dirty spoon in the sink, trying
to ignore the way Tom stared at him, cataloguing his every move, every gesture.
"Yes, I can tell that you and I were married in your world too. But we must have loved each
other very much since marriage was sealed with the most ancient rite, a soul bond. I felt it
before you passed out. It connected with me, the part of my soul that is still attached to
yours."
Fuck! He must have sensed the piece of Voldemort's soul inside Harry.
"It was accidental," Harry hurried to say. "I don't think he intended for that to happen."
"You can't give someone a piece of your soul accidentally," Tom argued.
Harry flipped the pancakes in the pan and looked away from Tom. It wasn't a good idea to
discuss Horcruxes with the man lest he gets the idea of making them.
"I don't know. I don't want to talk about it. Aren't you supposed to meet my father?" Harry
asked, trying to change the topic.
Tom watched him for a second and nodded. He got up and walked up to Harry, standing
behind him as Harry poured a ladle full of the pancake batter into the hot pan. He wrapped
his arms around Harry and lowered his head.
"I understand that there is something more there," he murmured. "But I can wait until you
want to talk about it. As for your father, baby, I will meet him later. I have already sent him
an owl, and my people at the ministry are aware of the abduction. They will brief your father
if necessary.
"Merlin, that man is insufferable," Harry said, moving around so he could grab the sugar pot,
but he froze when he came face to face with Tom. Tom smiled at him. His face heated up, and
he shifted about panicked and then pointed at the pot on the table and stammered. "I just need
the sugar, sorry."
Tom stepped aside, letting Harry grab the sugar jar.
"My parents were killed when I was an infant in my world," Harry said, as he started setting
up the pancakes on a plate and sprinkling the powdered sugar between the layers. "I didn't
really know them, but they definitely were not like whatever they are here."
"That was a long time ago," he said, pouring tea into the cup and placing it in front of Tom.
"Sugar with your tea?"
"No, thank you," Tom smiled, sitting down. He took a small sip of tea and had a bite from the
pancakes, and his eyes widened. "You are a good cook."
"Growing up alone with abusive Muggles around can make you learn a thing or two," Harry
said with a smirk, remembering that's exactly what Tom said about his knowledge of healing
spells. Tom stared at him, fork tightly pressed between his fingers and eyes wide.
"You were raised by Muggles?" he asked. "Why? Your family didn't take you in you after
your parents passed away?"
"My grandparents were dead. My Godfather was in prison, and my mum's Muggle sister and
her husband who raised me really hated magic."
"I think you were meant to come here so I could meet you," Tom said. "You and I are very
alike."
Harry laughed and shook his head, drinking his tea as he wondered if he should tell Tom that
Tom's counterpart in his world tried to kill him since infancy. The travel was a fluke fuelled
by the Horcrux inside Harry. It wasn't some fate-given gift.
Tom knew that Harry was not telling him the whole truth. He was sure that Harry and he
were bonded in Harry's world, whatever had happened between the two, his other self had
given Harry a piece of his own soul, and even though it was strangely imbued with dark
magic, Tom could feel it attached and nurtured into Harry's soul.
He refrained from pushing the issue any further. It was evident that memories from the past
world caused Harry pain. Tom was determined to keep this Harry—the kind, sweet, brave,
and smart one. Tom could feel something flutter and freeze inside his mind when thinking
about Harry.
The issue with Grindelwald's spawn needed to be resolved. Now that he knew the truth about
Harry, Tom was more than excited to witness Gellert trying to put his hands on Tom's
husband. He wanted to be there just to see Harry hex the bastard. Tom was going to crush this
little stunt the idiot was pulling. Even his uncle and daddy wouldn't be able to save him.
Gellert should have known better than to attack him.
"Yes, darling," he said, turning back to face Harry, who had just freshly showered in his
Muggle flat, and his hair was still wet and clinging to his pretty face. He was perfect now.
"Where did you put my clothes?" he asked awkwardly, wrestling with the towel.
"Here," Tom walked into the small bedroom and pulled the wardrobe open. "You want to go
home? I can take you there, and you can properly relax."
"No," Harry took the clothes and started putting them on, anxiously shifting his body when
Tom stared at him. "I was thinking of coming with you to the Ministry. You know I think the
other Harry was poisoned. Dobby said in the morning of me waking up here that I could
barely stand on my feet and was drunk. He told me you had to carry me home. It sounds
strange that after that the other Harry just died. I think he might have consumed something
more than just alcohol."
"Malfoy said he saw Nott putting something in your drink," Tom said, nodding in agreement.
It didn't seem Harry's theory of poisoning was too far off. "I was going to check the tapes for
the Ministry party, but with everything that has happened recently, I didn't really have the
time."
"Would it be alright if I came with you and took a look at them?" Harry asked, casting drying
spells on his hair. He was so fucking pretty. Tom got distracted for a second, and now that
Harry wasn't the spoiled, rotten airhead, Tom felt unable to hold himself from admiring his
pretty face. "We agreed that we would be looking for Harry's killer."
"Yes, of course," Tom nodded. "It's a good idea and a good place to start."
"Great then," Harry smiled. "We can go now if you are ready."
"Before we leave, Harry, I want to remind you that for the public, you are still my husband,
and they need to think that we have a very good, close relationship," Tom told him, holding
Harry's hand. "I hope you understand that you need to act like my husband in public. I can't
afford another scandal or speculations after the Skeeter article incident."
They landed in the Atrium. Harry seemed to be more used to the constant staring and ogling
and didn't pay attention to anyone. They walked together to the lift so they could go down to
level one where Tom's office was located. There were so many photographers still lurking in
the ministry after the morning press conference, and they seemed like still hungry for more
photos of Harry.
"Your wand, darling," Tom handed Harry his wand. Harry rolled his eyes at the endearment
but took the wand.
The photographers kept a proper distance from them but kept snapping pictures. Tom
wrapped his arm around Harry and pulled him close. Harry tried to move away instinctively
but Tom tilted his head and whispered into his ear. "Perfect, loving husbands, remember?"
"You are going to milk that, aren't you?" Harry grumbled, relaxing in his hold, and Tom
smirked.
"Who can blame me?" he asked. "You are exquisite inside and out."
He would woo this Harry, make him his. Tom just knew that Harry felt something for him,
but he needed convincing, coaxing, and Tom was very patient.
They stepped into the lift, and as soon as the doors opened, Tom glared at two ministry
workers, prompting them to press against the corners of the lift. He looked down at Harry,
playing with his soft hair and smiling at him while Harry glared at Tom, annoyed. He loved
his expression—the barely restrained rage, the scrunched-up nose. He wanted to do things to
annoy Harry just to see that expression on his face.
"You weren't this handsy before," Harry complained. "I recall, Minister, you couldn't stand to
be in my proximity. I doubt people expect you to carry me around in your arms."
"I think it was a mistake, Harry," Tom said, grinning. "It's best to show everyone that we are
stronger than ever."
He leaned down and kissed the top of Harry's head, taking in the scent of snowdrops and
magic that Harry carried everywhere with him. When the doors opened, the men ran outside
as if someone had set them on fire, and Tom nearly laughed, realising that they had never
seen the Minister to be that intimate with his husband.
When they walked into Tom's office, James Potter was already waiting inside, and it seemed
his secretary had brought the man coffee as he was glaring at the morning paper and sipping
from the cup.
"Tom," the man stood up as soon as they entered. "Harry, baby, are you okay? I have received
your owl, Tom. This is preposterous. One attack after another. Perhaps, we should get Harry a
bodyguard."
"I wouldn't trust anyone but myself to protect Harry, Sir," Tom said politely, pulling Harry
back into his arms and kissing Harry's hand. Harry rolled his eyes and shook his head, but
kept playing his part. "Which is why I will have him come with me to the Ministry. I don't
want him to stay alone until we have the issue with these scoundrels sorted."
"That's an excellent idea," James agreed, staring a little puzzled by Tom's overly enthusiastic
kisses on Harry's knuckles. "Are you both fine? No injuries?"
"We are fine," Harry nodded. "Tom might be the Minister, but he sure doesn't duel like one."
Tom squeezed Harry's hand in warning but smiled regardless. It seemed Harry knew that
most ministers in office were terrible fighters.
"Great," James sighed, sounding relieved. "I haven't told your mother about the newest
attempt at abducting you, baby. You know she would worry. Keep yourself safe and listen to
Tom."
"And Tom," James turned to him, grabbing the newspaper. "What kind of rubbish is Skeeter
printing again? This nonsense might hurt you politically. You should control the narrative,
not let this vulgar woman turn your private life into a cesspool of cheap gossip. Though, I do
think children would be a good idea."
"He is insufferable," Harry whispered, leaning closer to Tom just so his father wouldn't hear
him.
Tom couldn't hold his laughter. "Of course, Sir," he smiled, exhaling sharply. "I have already
taken care of the Prophet. Starting next week, the chief editor will be Colin Creevey, and he
has been a fervent supporter of mine. He should be able to manage all of our current issues
with Skeeter."
"Great," Potter said, throwing the paper back on Tom's desk and walking up to them. "Please
come to our house in the evening; we have things still to discuss regarding the Council, and I
do not wish to hold you back from your ministerial duties any further, Tom. Lily wants to see
you both."
He patted Tom's back, but hugged Harry, lifting him off his feet to Harry's horror. "Don't get
in trouble, baby," he told Harry. "I am going to have a heart attack one of these days."
"I will see you off, Sir," Tom hurried to open the door for his father-in-law.
Keeping the man appeased was a monumental task, but not having to worry about his brat
anymore was like a heavy weight had been lifted off his shoulders. It was callous to feel that
way, but seeing what his husband could have been, how perfect he could have been, and
having a taste of that perfection made Tom unconcerned about anything else but the aim to
keep this Harry with him, by his side.
He saw the man off and returned to his office, calling his secretary inside. She came in a
hurry and stared at Harry with apprehension.
"Ms Granger, could you please request the tapes for the ministry party?"
"The charity ball?" She asked. "That is set in two weeks, Mr Riddle. What kind of tapes do
you want for it?"
"No, I meant the tapes from the party last week," Tom clarified. "Please have the Ministry
security retrieve the tapes and bring them to my office."
"Of course, Sir," she nodded and then turned to Harry. "Mr Potter, would you like anything to
drink? Coffee perhaps?"
"I am fine, Hermione," Harry smiled. "And just call me, Harry."
She nodded, confused and left the room, closing the door behind her. "I was very good
friends with her at Hogwarts in my world. She was like a sister to me," Harry said wistfully.
"She seems to hate me here."
"Ms Granger is a reasonable woman. She will see you are different, and you might be able to
rebuild your friendship here with her," Tom said. He was hoping Harry would connect with
others here so he wouldn't leave.
"I think you should live your life," Tom said softly. "The old Harry would have never made
friends with her. But you should if you want to. Harry, you being here is a gift. It's a gift to
you from magic, and magic doesn't just give away gifts for no reason. You should not reject
it."
"Thank you, Tom," Harry said. Tom stepped closer and hugged him. He leaned over and
placed a chaste kiss on Harry's lips. "There is no one here."
I want to address comments regarding this fic being an mpreg. This story does not
feature any pregnancy/children for that matter. If it had mpreg, it would have been
tagged as mpreg. At this point I should tag it as no pregnancy lol. I am sorry to
disappoint those of you who were expecting it to be an mpreg. This fic was already
completed when I started publishing so the storyline can not be changed, and it was not
fitting to include pregnancy. I do have a Harrymort mpreg fic which I might publish in
the future once one of the fics here is completed. Although, that story is definitely not
for the faint-hearted. It is a body horror with the emphasis on horror.
On another note, for those of you, who like dimension travel stories, I have published a
new dimension travel story. You can read it here if you are interested: Double-Aspect
Paradox
Please let me know what you think of this chapter. Which part is your favourite? What
part are you looking forward most in the coming chapters
Chapter 10
Chapter Notes
"Protego!" Harry cried out as the spell cast by Tom collided with the shield and fractured like
it was made of physical glass. The crystalline fragments of magic tumbled down the
shimmering barrier and scattered across the lush, verdant grass. "Colloshoo."
"Really, Harry?" Tom laughed, fluidly stepping aside and avoiding the hex. A glimmer of
mirth danced in his grey eyes. They looked so strange and lifeless, the pale, somber hue of
his irises making his eyes even more striking. Harry still couldn't get used to them—he
struggled to reconcile the eyes that stared back at him with those he recalled from his
memories. Something was almost eerily unnatural about them, unsettling and yet so
beautiful.
Before Tom could open his mouth and ridicule his choice of hex, Harry waved his wand and
sent an Expulso Curse at Tom.
Tom's eyes lit up, and he smirked, excited. With a quick wave of his wand, he configured the
air particles into a solid mass, and when the blue light of Expulso clashed against it, the
configured mass floating in the air absorbed the blasting curse and evaporated as if it had
never existed.
He launched a series of swift hexes at Harry, seeking to catch him off guard. But Harry
seemed to get a thrill out of deflecting his attacks; he parried each spell with ease, his own
magic flowing smoothly in response. Despite the intensity of the duel, Tom was an excellent
opponent, and Harry found himself enjoying sparring with him.
It had been two weeks since he had confessed the truth, and surprisingly, time had flown by
easier than he thought it would. He was sure that Tom would have a lot of questions to ask
about his world, but to his surprise, Tom didn't really question him. If Harry didn't know
better, he would think that the man was being considerate and wanted him to have space. The
few questions Tom did ask seemed almost innocent and were about Harry himself, not
Voldemort or the wizarding world. Harry thought Tom would be more interested in knowing
things about himself in his world, but instead, Tom was being strangely accommodating. He
would even let Harry be if, for whatever reason, Harry avoided answering his questions.
So, Harry had spent his time concentrated on finding out more about the circumstances of the
other Harry's death. Visiting the Ministry every day with Tom was almost fun. Tom had set
up a small desk inside his own office where Harry was meticulously going through the tapes
of the Ministry ball and reading up on the newspapers from the archives about the other
Harry, building a case and a list of potential suspects.
A lot of people hated Harry. And just as many had grudges against him. His counterpart only
looked like a piece of sunshine.
"Exorior Ignis Irae," Harry murmured, and a bright, luminescent light flowed from the tip of
his wand. A swirling vortex of flames coalesced into a massive, fiery entity. It appeared
before him, a towering, humanoid figure with skin made of living flames that crackled and
danced with energy. Its eyes glowed like hot coals, and its very presence seemed to draw the
air around it into a vortex of heat.
Tom stared at the conjuration with curiosity, his wand up in a defensive mode as he regarded
it.
Tom's eyes narrowed as the fire wraith Harry conjured attacked him, sending blasts of fire his
way and charging towards him. Harry watched Tom move quickly, casting protective shields.
Tom's arms were bare; he had rolled up the sleeves of his white dress shirt, tucked into his
elegant black suit trousers. His body was so fast despite his impressive height, and he looked
so good in his well-tailored clothes.
Fuck, he looked so bloody hot! Harry's cheeks turned red. What the hell was he drooling over
this guy for all of a sudden?
"Aguamenti!" Tom sent a blast of water against the walking fire wraith, bringing it to its
knees. "You are very skilled. Were you an Auror, Harry?"
"Um... no," Harry said, eyes wide as he suddenly realised that Tom noticed the way he was
staring at him.
"Hit wizard then?" A quick succession of water spells and slicing hexes drowned the
conjuration. "You duel in a way that I have never seen before. I can tell that you have
experience."
"Not a hit wizard either," Harry gulped and jumped aside when Tom hit him with an
unknown spell.
"Now I am more curious," Tom smiled, skillfully avoiding the curse Harry cast in response.
"And you need to teach me that spell that makes your conjurations attack. That seems very
handy. Did you have to create a lot of diversions?"
"The Oppugno Jynx?" Harry asked, confused. "How don't you know that jynx?"
"I haven't seen it used before you," Tom said as they continued duelling. "I suppose there are
some differences between the world you lived in and this one."
Harry nodded. That seemed logical. The attack jynx was very useful when dealing with
snatchers. He had used it multiple times by conjuring birds, ferrets, badgers and just having
them attack those bloody bastards. It created enough confusion and chaos that he always
managed to get away.
The early rays of sunlight illuminated the gardens with a warm orange hue. Harry yawned as
he continued duelling with Tom. In recent weeks, he hadn't woken up so early. Today was an
exception because he told Tom he wanted to go to the Ministry with him to avoid having to
deal with Ministry workers gawking at him as they accompanied him to Tom's office.
Tom had woken him up and then convinced him to have a duel in the gardens. He really liked
duelling with Harry for some reason.
"Incendio!" A jet of fire was conjured, and Tom directed it at Harry; Harry jumped away, and
the fire burned the lush grass on the ground. The earthy, pungent scent of burnt grass wafted
into the air, carrying with them the released volatile organic compounds.
"That wasn't nice, Tom," Harry complained, making Tom smile amused.
"I didn't know you wanted me to be nice," he said, casting another hex, making Harry raise
up protective shields.
"Oh, I can be nice, Harry," Tom whispered. "I am not sure you want me nice though."
"Why? Did I come with broken and damaged, do not treat nicely tags?" Harry cast a Jelly-
Fingers Curse.
"No," Tom smiled, deflecting the spell easily. "If I were nice to you, you'd get bored."
"Wow, Tom! Thank you for trying to keep things interesting here then," Harry rolled his eyes.
"What would I do if I wasn't trying to fight for my life constantly?"
"Oh, so there are some things you share with my dead Alluran husband, huh?" Tom laughed
as he summoned a swarm of tiny, razor-sharp shadowy tendrils that attached themselves to
Harry. Harry felt how they started to slowly drain his vitality and suffocate him. "Just as
dramatic!"
He would have rolled his eyes at Tom's amusement if he hadn't felt a strange dread at the way
the man found humour despite his husband being killed and the perpetrator still not being
caught. Harry's magic went wild, and the dark tendrils eating at his energy were torn to pieces
and dispersed by the bright light stemming from his entire body.
"And that's where the similarity ends," Tom said, watching mesmerised. "You are perfect!
Your magic is so pure, and there is so much strength in you."
Harry glared at Tom. There was almost childlike mirth in his eyes. This elegantly dressed,
perfect man who commanded respect with his mere presence was staring at Harry like a boy
who had discovered magic for the first time.
"Master Harry, Master Tom," Dobby popped right into the middle of the duel, making the two
wizards stop. "Breakfast is ready."
"Thank you, Dobby," Tom said, putting his wand in his holster and walking towards Harry.
"We will be in a moment."
"Were you a rebel, Harry?" Harry turned his head to Tom abruptly, having not realised that he
had managed to cross the distance between them and was standing in front of him, peering at
him with his inquisitive eyes. "Some kind of fighter for hire? You are very skilled. I can see
the experience in your movements."
"I was just a soldier, Tom," Harry said, not wanting to create unnecessary assumptions in the
man's head that could lead to more problems in the future. "There was a war in my world.
Some psychopath was trying to kill me because of a stupid prophecy."
"Psychopath?" Tom brought his hand to brush against the side of Harry's hand that was
slightly bruised as he started healing it. "Who was it? Do they exist here?"
"Er... um, it doesn't matter," Harry cleared his throat and looked at the ground where the grass
was burnt because of Tom's spell. "Look, you've burnt the grass. It now looks like an ugly
patch in all these pretty green lawns."
"Hmm," Tom moved around to look at where Harry was pointing at. "Do you want me to
show you something amazing, darling?"
Harry looked at Tom suspiciously. He was already used to Tom calling him his favourite pet
names and knew he needed to pick his battles.
Tom unfastened the snake-shaped tie pin from his tie, grabbed Harry's hand, and to Harry's
horror, pricked his finger. Blood dripped onto the burnt ground.
"What the bloody hell is wrong with you?" Harry screamed, trying to pull back his hand but
Tom reached out and held Harry by the waist not allowing him to move away. He smiled,
delighted, as he healed the tiny wound.
"Oh, I won't ever hurt you, Harry," he said, laughing and looking pleased with himself. "It
was just a tiny prick. I have healed it and can make it better too if it hurts."
He tilted his head and kissed Harry's finger. Harry stared wide-eyed and tried to move away
his hand, but Tom only tightened his grip on him as if Harry were a disobedient little kitten
trying to escape the warmth and security of the nest.
"What was that for?" Harry demanded, deciding to just relax because once Riddle obsessed
over holding him, there was no reasoning with him. This man was unhinged even if all the
marbles were where they were supposed to be. Oh well!
"Let your magic flow," Tom told him, pointing at the ground. "It doesn't need to be any
particular spell. Just a twirl of tiny magic."
Harry sighed and let his magic seep out from his wand onto the ground. Once the light hit the
soil, the droplet of Harry's blood melted into the dirt, suddenly crackling and then flowers
bloomed where the ground was tortured and bare. Harry stared astonished, his mouth open
and the corners of his eyes crinkled.
"How?"
"I take it you really don't know anything about Alluran blood," Tom smiled. "You don't have
any lurnes in your world?"
"Not that I am aware of," Harry sighed, bending down to pick a flower to examine. It was
pretty, a kind of flower Harry had never seen before, and it had a soft, comforting, sweet
smell. "What else can I do other than make flowers with my blood and apparently have
children? Anything more useful I can use in combat?"
"Harry, darling," he said, gently stroking Harry's cheek. "Your blood isn't letting you grow
flowers and babies. It lets you grow anything. You could start a literal army of monsters.
Except, thankfully, the brat previously occupying that body had no interest in world
destruction, although I wouldn't be surprised if his lover was. Old Harry didn't have the talent
to do it, which must have been a blessing the wizarding world didn't know it had."
"Wait, grow monsters as in to birth them? Why would I or... er... old Harry for that matter do
something so disgusting... Merlin, just the thought..."
Tom laughed.
"What are you laughing at?" Harry demanded. "The whole idea is so gross. I wouldn't be
surprised if old Harry, as you call him, actually killed himself because of it."
"I don't know if I should pretend that your conclusions are true and let you suffer your
imagination or be a nice husband and tell you the truth," Tom smirked.
Calling himself Harry's husband was a bit too much. Harry didn't know why Tom insisted on
pretending when it was just the two of them with no outside eyes, watching them.
"Darling, you don't birth monsters; your magic grows them," he said. "Outside of you. It's
like casting a Patronus charm, but Patronus isn't physical, not unless some powerful magic is
involved to make it take its final form. No, you can create physical monsters that can
reproduce on their own."
"Wait, can I also create human babies like that too?" Harry asked suddenly curious and
confused.
"Why? Do you want to grow one in a cabbage patch?" Tom joked. "No, darling. Humans can
not grow outside the human body. If you tried, you'd create a wraith or a soulless changeling.
It won't be a child. That one you'd need to let grow inside you."
"Sounds like a horrific nightmare," Harry said, feeling cold shivers run down his spine just at
the mere thought. Tom only laughed, brushing back Harry's hair off his forehead.
"Let's go have breakfast," he said. "Your house elf would be offended if you let the food he'd
made go cold. We need to leave for the Ministry. I have an early Wizengamot session today.
You can come with me and work in my office or if you are feeling adventurous, you can just
sit in for the session."
"Just sit there and look pretty," Tom said. "Maybe one of these pureblood bastards will look
at you long enough that I will have a reason to challenge them to a duel till death."
"That's not a thing?" Harry said, walking along with Tom towards the entrance. "That's not a
thing, right?"
Tom held Harry close, his arm wrapped around Harry's back, his hand resting on his hip as
they walked down the Atrium. Normally, he came to work alone, since Harry was always
asleep early in the mornings, and he didn't wish to wake him up. The crowd of people passing
by stared at them with unconcealed curiosity.
The journalists waiting in the Atrium started taking pictures, and Tom had to pull Harry
closer to avoid losing him in the crowd.
"Minister Riddle," a woman Tom didn't recognise from a clearly unknown publication started
chasing them. "Do you have a comment on the recent barbaric attack on a pureblood family
committed by a Muggle-born wizard? What would be the Ministry's response to the lax
regulations allowing Muggle-born wizards not to specify their blood status when seeking
employment?"
Harry shifted in his arms and tilted his head to glare at the woman as they continued moving
forward. Tom didn't slow down and kept walking. He was already used to the usual
provocatory line of questioning. It was one thing or another every other day. And now that
Rita Skeeter and the entire editorial team had been fired from the Daily Prophet, they would
most certainly try to create alternative routes for spreading their anti-Muggle propaganda
generously sponsored by Gellert Grindelwald and his supporters.
"Mr Potter-Riddle," the woman wouldn't stop as she rushed after them, holding her quill and
parchment and an enchanted floating camera. "In recent weeks you have been photographed
wearing Muggle-inspired fashion outfits that have suddenly become extremely popular
among pureblood fashionistas. Are you trying to influence the public by whitewashing your
husband's pro-Muggle-born policies?"
Harry's movements became slower, and Tom had to put more force into dragging him away
or his new and improved husband would definitely curse this woman in the middle of the
Ministry.
"Are you aware of your influence on the public, Mr Potter-Riddle? How can you contribute
to such Muggle-born propaganda being spread, being a pureblood yourself, when these
people come into our world and wreak havoc? Of course, not all of them, but there should be
rules, and you are willingly deceiving the public who trust you and your family."
"Merlin, can you shut up!" Harry told her, rolling his eyes. "I don't know your blood status,
but I can smell the status of your hygiene, and I would prefer if you kept your distance, you
fascist loser. Go cry some more, preferably under a shower."
A small smirk curled the corners of Tom's lips as he turned his head to look at the way the
woman turned red and fumed, flailing her hands in disbelief.
"Thank Merlin and Morgana for Muggle indoor plumbing, or you'd be vanishing your
excrement into the unknown. Although I am not sure you're using Muggle indoor plumbing
since you seem to hate them so much. But that explains the assault you have just inflicted
against my olfactory senses," Harry was being so rude, and Tom couldn't help but enjoy it.
"Mr Potter," the woman screamed after them as they reached the lift, and the attendant held
the door open for them. "How dare you! How dare you mock me instead of answering me
when there is a mother whose child has been hurt and another kidnapped by those so-called
Muggle-borns!"
They stepped into the lift, and the attendant closed the doors before the woman could follow
them. Tom pressed his lips into a thin line. This was a disaster.
"Just the usual nonsense," Tom sighed. "Don't worry about it."
The attendant stared at Harry, and Tom felt a burst of irritation. He moved to stand in front of
Harry and glared at the man. The old wizard inclined his head as if in apology and moved
away from them. Harry hadn't noticed the exchange, and Tom tightened his jaw as he
wrapped his arms around his husband. The last few weeks had been exciting. He had never in
his life waited for afternoons, but now he did, as Harry always came to the Ministry during
lunch and brought him coffee from a Muggle shop and some sweets from a bakery. They had
lunch together in his office and sometimes outside in the Ministry gardens.
Tom had all the intentions of convincing Harry to stay, and things were going splendidly.
Harry liked duelling with him and having lunch while they discussed different duelling
techniques. He got sad at times, and Tom was sure he was thinking of his own world and
something told Tom that Harry missed his friends, but Tom had a plan for that too. He just
needed to make new ones, and when he did, he wouldn't just abandon them, would he now?
He wanted Harry. He wanted him for himself, and he was never one for rules and playing
fair. The possibility of a wizard being able to travel through worlds into a particular one was
so slim, so tiny, that the fact that Harry did only meant that Fate herself wanted them
together. He was Fate's gift to Tom for all his prayers to the ancient magic when he was a
child, and for when he begged for the hollow feeling inside him to go away.
Harry was what could fill that void, that strange emptiness.
The lift doors opened, and they stepped out together. When he stepped into his office, his
secretary was already there at his desk, sorting out stacks of paper.
"Mr Ridd—" she paused when she noticed Harry and cleared her throat, moving away in
discomfort. "Um... I have everything ready here."
Tom turned his head to look at his pretty husband. Harry looked at Ms Granger with barely
contained sadness, almost like a kitten who had been denied a belly rub. Tom nodded and
gestured for her to proceed.
"Today's session will begin with the introduction of the newly appointed head of the
Accidental Magic Reversal Department, Jeremy Peasegood, at 8:00 AM," she said, placing
the stacks of paper in front of Tom as he sat down. "You are scheduled to make a statement
on the current state of the economy and recent budgetary decisions during the Ministerial
Statements segment, starting at 8:15 PM; here is the budget report."
Tom grabbed the papers, gave them a cursory glance and nodded. Ms Granger was anything
but unorganised.
"After your statement, we have two private members' bills up for discussion. Mrs Amelia
Bones will introduce Bill WG-2002-06, an act to reduce potion-making waste and subsequent
disposal into muggle waters, and Mr Gilbert Wimple will introduce Bill WG-2002-06A, an
act to establish a framework for the development and regulation of experimental magic and
licensing for practitioners of dark arts."
Tom stared at the proposals but his attention snapped towards the door when it opened and
his advisory staff entered along with Senior Undersecretary Barty Crouch Jr. Tom hid his
grimace when he spotted the head of the Magical Law Enforcement Draco Malfoy. They
greeted him politely and Tom responded with a quick nod, his attention back to the
paperwork on his desk as he checked his watch.
"Following the private members' bills, the Wizengamot will present its proposal for a new
trade agreement with the French Ministry. Debate will begin on this proposal, which is
expected to be a key topic of discussion," Granger handed him the parchments for the
proposal.
"Perfect," Tom's eyes snapped to Malfoy going through the shelf in his office where Tom had
bottles of wine and firewhiskey and tea. He narrowed his eyes confused by what this moron
was doing.
"Mr Riddle, public opinion on having an orphanage for magical children has shifted; in our
recent polling, the approval ratings have increased dramatically. We should be able to resume
the construction again this coming week, and there are several calls to our office from private
citizens willing to contribute financially," Lestrange, his senior advisor informed him, placing
polling reports in front of him.
"Perfect," Tom said. "Have our office release an updated statement on this matter. Also, we
are going to need to postpone the Ministry charity ball given the recent incidents. Make sure
the administrative office sends the updated invitations."
"Are you sure you want to postpone the ball?" Lestrange asked.
"Yes, it would be in bad taste if we proceed with the event as scheduled when many got
injured during the orphanage opening incident. Even if the ball is delayed by a few days, the
message sent is more important," Tom told him.
Malfoy's brat was making too much noise, clinking cups together as he was pouring tea and
adding sugar to the cup and stirring loudly. Couldn't this bastard have his tea on his own time
and not in Tom's bloody office! He wanted to fire Malfoy so badly.
"Sir," Rabastan moved about awkwardly. "You will need to have a press release to comment
on the recent attack on the Smith family."
The men in the room looked at each other as if unwilling to break the news.
"It's bad," Barty interrupted the other man. "Kevin Entwhistle, a Muggle-born wizard,
employed by the Smith family, went absolutely bonkers and well..."
Barty placed the Daily Prophet in front of Tom. Tom stared at the photo taken from the scene
—the destroyed house, the little child crying and holding his torn-apart arm and the Smiths'
hysterical faces, twisted with fear and despair.
"Mr Creevey had them release as nuanced and neutral an article about this incident as
possible," Rabastan said. "But the situation with the missing child and the grieving family has
the public absolutely enraged."
"How is the search going? Does the Auror department have any progress?" Tom asked,
staring at Malfoy, who was ignoring him completely and trying to convince Harry to have the
tea he had made. "Mr Malfoy?"
"Er... Yes, Minister," he said, leaning down to hand the cup of tea to Harry, who looked
irritated but took it. "We haven't received any reports from the squad yet, but the Head Auror
is personally overseeing the search. They must be outside the Floo network to be able to send
proper updates."
Tom was tired of this. He was constantly trying to keep hold of all the stupid pieces and some
insane unhinged bastard could simply ruin everything. Entwhistle's face would be on the
front page every newspaper and his name on every radio channel, but instead of being
presented as the lunatic that he was, they were going to emphasise his blood status, and Tom
would need to control the narrative before it went out of control.
"After the Wizengamot session, schedule an advisory statement release to the press and
organise a meeting with the family, Rabastan. Make sure we have a media presence. People
need to know that Ministry is taking these matters seriously, and the criminals will be
punished regardless of what some of these blood purists claim," he said.
"Maybe, I could help?" Harry's voice, soft and delicate, grabbed everyone's attention. "I
could go look for the missing child."
"Are you out of your bloody mind?" Malfoy screamed. "You know how dangerous it is?"
"I could go with Hermione," Harry said, pointing at Tom's baffled secretary.
"As if taking a glorified filing clerk with you is somehow better," Malfoy screamed, making
Harry grimace and look pointedly at Tom.
"Mr Malfoy," Tom narrowed his eyes at the blonde. "Please refrain from raising your voice
unnecessarily in my office."
"That said, thank you, Harry, for your concern, but it would not be proper if two civilians
were conducting any unofficial Auroral investigation," he told his pretty husband.
Harry clenched the teacup in his palm and looked almost like he was pouting. His secretary,
on the other hand, looked alarmed at the sudden suggestion and seemed almost grateful that
Malfoy protested. Tom turned his attention back to the paperwork on his desk.
"Mr Malfoy, please brief me with current information after the Wizengamot session," Tom
told Draco, trying to snap his attention away from Harry. He always found Draco's obsession
with his cousin a little creepy but never particularly cared to address it. But now that it was
directed at this Harry, Tom bristled with annoyance and impatient anger.
The door to his office opened, and Pettigrew stuck his head inside.
Tom glared at the idiot. He told this moron not to call him that in public when there were so
many people around. He sighed, motioning to his men to collect the papers as he checked his
watch again. The session was about to start, and he didn't wish to be late. He was punctual
and didn't tolerate tardy behaviour at work. People scrambled to collect the necessary
paperwork and followed him out.
"Ms Granger," he said, turning back to the witch. "You can stay here and keep my husband
company."
He tilted his head to look at his husband. The pretty man perked up at that and looked at
Tom's secretary as if waiting for her reaction.
"Um... sir," she rubbed her hands in discomfort, but before she could say anything, Tom
turned around and left the room.
Hermione turned around and looked at the Minister's pretty, pureblood husband. He was so
beautiful. One could say many things about this man, but one could never deny his ethereal,
superlunary beauty. There was something so cold, and at the same time, so whimsical about
his facial features. His eyes were hypnotic; they could hold someone spellbound without any
magic.
The first time Hermione had seen Harry Potter was at Hogwarts. He was surrounded by many
others who were staring at him in awe, trying to become his friend, but he gave them no
attention and seemed completely anxious about the attention he was receiving. Hermione was
eager to know more about Harry, having extensively studied about magic when she learned
she was a witch and being told that magic came from an ancient witch whose magic was not
bound by the rules that others obeyed.
She soon realised that the magical world was far from accepting and didn't want to give a
place to people like her, to outsiders. And Harry Potter was the first person to teach her that
lesson. The illusion of his beauty shattered, and Hermione hated the little, snobby airhead
who considered others beneath him.
She was always nervous around him and didn't really know how to behave as he was the
spouse of his boss. Although it was only recently that Harry made frequent visits to his
husband.
Hermione chanced a brief glance and saw that Potter was staring at her. It was concerning.
She didn't want to be roped into some kind of scandal because the pureblood socialite was
bored.
"Would you like..." Hermione cleared her throat, seeing as the man was already holding a cup
of tea made by that insufferable bastard Draco Malfoy. "...well, anything to eat? I could
perhaps bring you some scones?"
"No, it's fine, Hermione," he said with a smile, making Hermione's stomach twist with worry.
"I think Tom has some biscuits in his office from the vending machine."
The man got up and walked to the Minister's desk and started going through the drawers,
causing Hermione's blood pressure to rise and her heart rate increase as she didn't know how
to politely stop this man from rummaging through what could have been sensitive state
documents, not that Mr Riddle would keep them in such easily accessible place, but one
could never be too cautious.
"Mr Potter," she started, raising her hands as if to indicate she meant no disrespect. It took
very little to make this pretty man lose his mind and start screaming, and she definitely didn't
need that kind of scandal today. "Maybe I can go and get you those biscuits from the
cafeteria."
"Oh, here they are," Potter laughed and took out a handful of biscuits from the drawer and put
them on the desk. "Want some? These are Ron's favourite, but they're not bad."
Ron's? Did he mean the Head Auror Ronald Weasley? Since when was Potter addressing
Weasley by name? Surely, he wasn't one of Potter's latest paramours. Hermione's heart almost
dropped, imagining it. Weasley didn't seem the type to be so foolish as to sleep with the
Minister's husband. It would not only be a career suicide for him, but his life quite literally
could end if he was in an adulterous affair with James Potter's son. Hermione liked Weasley,
for Merlin's sake.
"Here," she almost fell to the ground as Potter shoved a bunch of wrapped snacks into her
hands.
"Thank you, Mr Potter," Hermione moved to the other side of the office, nervously fiddling
with the biscuits as she pretended to fix the books on the shelf.
Alarm bells rang in Hermione's head. There was no good reason in the world that this
pureblood man would want to suddenly be pleasant to her. Especially when the Minister
wasn't around to deal with his hysterics if he inevitably realised that whatever game he was
playing, he wouldn't get his way.
Many people found it strange that Harry Potter was married to Tom Riddle, but Hermione
didn't see anything strange in it. Perhaps because everyone expected a pureblood wizard like
Potter with Alluran blood to marry another pureblood from a well-known wizarding family.
Hermione remembered from school that Harry Potter was dating Gellert Grindelwald Jr. So it
was a shock to many that Mr Riddle married Potter soon after getting elected.
Perhaps, because to Hermione Tom Riddle didn't come off as an actual Muggle-born wizard.
There was just something extremely eerie about the man that many perhaps didn't notice, but
Hermione couldn't shrug off the feeling. Riddle's magic was odd, too dark, and there was
something in there that Muggle-born witches and wizards didn't have. She was pretty sure
that he was either a half-blood or a pureblood. Riddle grew up in an orphanage, and there
were no records of his parentage, which supported her suspicions even more.
The thing that many didn't talk about was that pureblood families were in the magic world
long enough to carry familial curses. And every half-blood or pureblood had a high
likelihood of inheriting the vestiges of these curses. They all had strange traits that they
eventually were unable to control, no wonder Muggle-borns always outperformed them, but
above all, half-bloods fared better than their pureblood counterparts. Their new blood and
genes sometimes helped them fight better against the remnants of curses that their blood
carried.
And while the Minister was a picture of perfect manners and charm, there was something
about the man's magic that screamed generational insanity and dark arts. She wouldn't be
surprised if Riddle was a product of what no one spoke about but people often whispered
about—a lot of these Muggle-hating purebloods loved to use magic on Muggles and force
them to their will. Hermione had checked her mother's memories once in fear that something
might have happened to her too. But thankfully, she was her parents' daughter.
Riddle might have been a Muggle-born wizard on paper but that man was stranger than the
purebloods, and Hermione wasn't surprised that he would marry the wizard everyone wanted
for themselves. And perhaps, he was the only one capable of controlling this spoiled, self-
centered man, which was why she was very nervous to be anywhere near him while his
husband was away at the Wizengamot meeting.
"Ron's having all the fun, and we are stuck here staring at the walls," Harry said, inviting
Hermione's attention again. "Sorry, it sounds awful when I say it like that. I didn't mean it's
fun that a child got kidnapped and another was hurt, just that being an Auror must be fun,
yeah?"
"Perhaps," Hermione pressed her lips into a thin line. "I didn't ever wish to become an Auror
so my opinion might not be the most fair."
Hermione blinked at his choice of words and at the fact that she was pretty sure Potter was
complimenting her. She turned red and gulped.
"These criminals wouldn't have stood a chance if you were in charge of hunting them down,"
Potter continued, and Hermione wished she saw deceit and mockery on his face because if
she did, her heart wouldn't flutter in her chest like it did now.
She opted to keep her mouth shut as she had no idea what elaborate game he was playing.
She glanced at him again, and he was chewing on a sweet snack, his face so pretty that
Hermione regretted looking. She heard him sigh, and then he grabbed the newspaper from the
Minister's desk and stared at the article on the front page.
Entwhistle's face was plastered all over it, and Aurors were looking for him. Hermione only
hoped Smith's little boy was alive. Entwhistle seemed like a normal guy when they were
students. Hermione didn't understand why he would do something like that. It was mental.
"Is it me or is that a residue mark on the wallpaper on the right upper corner?" Potter asked,
turning the newspaper around and pointing at the animated photo of the crime scene from
Daily Prophet.
Hermione turned her head to look at it. There was some kind of mark on the wall, but it could
be from anything; she wasn't sure why Potter cared about it. Perhaps, it offended his delicate
pureblood sensibilities that the decor in the picture was tainted by the ugly smear on the wall.
"Yes, Mr Potter... uh... Harry," she said. "Do you want the weekly fashion issue? I can fetch it
for you."
Potter shook his head and took out his wand. Hermione watched him carefully. She thought
he had stopped using his wand a while ago. Perhaps, the Minister had given it back to his
husband because of the latest attacks. Still, she needed to be careful or this airhead would
burn down the whole Ministry accidentally.
He flicked his wand, and the black and white newspaper image was colourised instantly, and
Potter scrunched up his cute little nose, tracing the now purple stain on the wall with his
delicate fingers. Hermione narrowed her eyes surprised.
"It's purple," Potter said. "Specifically Tyrian purple like the residue left from Purpura Curse;
the Brainworm Curse."
Hermione grabbed the paper and stared. He was right. That was no ordinary stain. Most
curses didn't leave stains behind, but Brainworm Curse always did leave a residue because it
literally conjured and sent brain-eating worms into someone's brain, and these creatures
carried by magic always left glowing purple slime behind.
"The official Auror reports don't have anything about this," Hermione said with panic. "It
looks like it was cast at someone who was about 179 centimeters tall based on the smear on
the wall. Both Smith and his wife weren't at home at the time of the attack, and there was no
one else. The official reports show that Entwhistle's height matches, but that means that..."
The Auror briefing report was still on the Minister's desk. Hermione turned around, grabbed
it and started going through it. Harry stepped closer and stood next to her, looking at the
reports with her. Hermione felt his sweet, soft scent reach her nose. Potter smelled so good
that she blushed by just thinking about it.
"That means there must have been someone else with him there who cast the spell on him,
and that someone wanted him to get caught kidnapping and hurting these children," Harry
said.
"Yes," Hermione nodded, still in disbelief that Harry Potter of all people would notice such
things that trained Aurors missed. "But that's the least of our concerns—Brainworm Curse
after 18 hours of being cast ends in violent behaviour like cannibalism. This paper said
Entwhistle kidnapped Smith's child around 3 o'clock yesterday. This means he will descend
into the final stage of the curse and hurt the child. Whoever cast the spell on him wanted him
to do this, and there is only about an hour left."
"We need to find him before he goes insane and eats that child," Potter said. "These worms
like cold, humid places like caves. Do you have any maps here so we can locate the closest
cave to Smith's house?"
"We don't need a map," Hermione shook her head. "I know where the closest caves are. We
need to reach out to the Auror department and let them know."
"We need to go ourselves," Potter said, getting up. "The child will die a horrible death and the
man will die too since those worms will eventually kill him after he goes insane."
"We can't just go after a crazy man," Hermione argued. "Your husband wouldn't be happy. I
could get fired. It's unwise."
She couldn't understand why he wanted to do this. It seemed out of character. Maybe, he just
wanted to get Hermione in trouble.
"I will go," the pureblood lurne took out his wand. "There is no time. Please tell me where
these caves are."
She bit her lip. This was insanity. She shouldn't consider it. But Potter was already heading
for the door and her best option was to go with him to keep him safe.
"We need to leave a note for your husband," she yelled, trying to keep up with him as he
headed for the Atrium.
"We will square this issue away even before his meeting is over," Potter said confidently. "No
need to waste paper with unnecessary notes."
Hermione's worry and confusion grew as she ran after him, her heels clicking against the
marble floors. This could end badly, they could die or worse, she could get fired.
"Mr Potter! Harry," she stepped into the fireplace with him. "This is dangerous."
"Well, then Entwhistle better be prepared," the pretty man said, lifting up his wand.
Hermione closed her eyes, held the man's hand. She couldn't believe that his skin was so
smooth and soft to the touch. They transported via the Floo Network in the middle of
nowhere. Potter didn't let go of her hand and walked forward, still clutching her fingers as if
his life depended on it. Hermione was going to get into so much trouble for endangering this
ultimate trophy husband who was probably just entertaining himself with whatever this was.
A blasting spell came flying their way out of nowhere; Potter pulled her aside so fast that
Hermione didn't even manage to blink. The spell hit the ground instead and burnt the dry
leaves. Another curse was sent their way, and this time Potter blocked it with a shield. What
was happening? How was he even so fast?
"Locomotor Mortis," Hermione shouted, tripping another who seemed just as eager to run up
to them.
"I think there is a cursed barrier enacted here," Potter said, fingers moving in the air. "Help
me dismantle it. I think the caves are behind the barrier."
Hermione couldn't feel anything, but she experimentally sent a burst of magic to where the
man was pointing, and the magic shattered against the barrier. How in the world would he
feel and know this? What had happened to Potter? It was like he was a totally different man.
Surely, the minister wasn't holding him under an Imperius Curse or something, right? Right?
"You bloody fucking fools," the man Hermione had tripped screamed, getting up.
"Confringo."
Potter blocked the spell and hit him with a wordless one. Hermione stared completely
astonished as the man who was barely able to levitate a feather at Hogwarts and ruined every
single potion engaged in a highly technical duel with a crazy dark wizard.
"Hermione, I will cover you. Just undo the barrier and get to the child, please!" Potter told
her, continuing to blast the barrage of spells at the other man.
She nodded without being able to articulate her bafflement over what was happening.
Turning around, she worked on the barrier undoing the magic holding it in place. It was a
very powerful one, but Hermione was very skilled with this type of magic and maybe Potter
was partially right. Sometimes, she wished she participated in all the action instead of sitting
in the office and writing briefs and preparing paperwork.
"Expelliarmus," Potter shouted, disarming the man and sending another petrifying spell his
way. "What a bloody prick! I will tie these two up just in case."
Hermione watched him transfigure grass into ropes and tied the men up like this was
something he did every day. No, this was definitely not normal.
The barrier shattered under the strength of Hermione's magic, and she ran forward, her heart
beating fast and her throat dry at imagining the possibility that they might be late and the
child would have been killed horrifically. The Purpura Curse would have completely altered
Entwhistle's sense of reality—once the last stage happened, there was no reversal.
She entered the humid cave, where it smelled almost rotten. Hearing footsteps behind her, she
turned around to find Potter following her. They heard a cry from a corner and turned towards
the sound. Running into the smaller area, they found Entwhistle sitting on the wet floor, his
back pressed against the wall of the cave, his wand pointed at the child, his eyes all red and
blood dripping from his nose. He was clearly near the end.
Someone wanted a Muggle-born wizard to commit such an atrocious crime that no one in
their right mind would even be able to silence the mob of people calling for anti-Muggle-
born laws. Their arrival alerted his attention, and he jumped up, holding his wand at them,
but Potter disarmed him with ease.
"You need help, Entwhistle," he said. "It looks like you've been cursed, and you're going to
die if you're not treated right away. Now, let that child go, and we will help you."
The child looked so scared in the man's hold, his small frame shaking with tears in his eyes.
"No," Entwhistle cried, tightening his hold on the scared boy. "My family will die if I do."
"We don't have time for this," Potter said, and without even using his wand or uttering a spell,
levitated the bag sitting behind Entwhistle and smashed it against the man's head. He fell
down unconscious.
"We should put a temporal dilation spell on him," Hermione said. "Or he won't make it."
She cast the spell as Potter picked up the scared child and held him in his arms.
"Hey, you're safe. I promise," he told the child. "We will take you to your parents soon."
The child looked completely taken by Potter's appearance and wrapped his tiny arms around
Potter's neck and hid his face in the man's chest.
"All done," Hermione said. "Now we need to take him and those two idiots from outside to
the Ministry and let the Aurors deal with the rest."
"Thank you, Hermione," Potter said sweetly, making Hermione's heart beat faster.
Tom normally enjoyed the debate portion of the session, but today some of the Wizengamot
members were being particularly belligerent, and he had enough on his mind to entertain any
more of their nonsense.
"The proposed trade agreement is a recipe for disaster!" Bones shook her head. "They seek to
flood our markets with cheap, subpar magical goods, crushing our own industries and putting
hundreds out of work!"
Tom wasn't required to attend the debate or the votes, but he chose to since he was very keen
on providing direction and leadership to his government, and he often focused on
coordinating cabinet meetings, policy development, and international diplomacy. And
especially international diplomacy, considering these morons were ruining the agreements he
had managed to make after months of negotiations.
Tom would have to resort to backroom deals. He scanned their faces with a cursory glance,
deciding which ones he would need to pressure and which ones would be open for a bit of a
quid pro quo, and if everything failed, the threat of retaliation and assured destruction would
do the trick.
"Sir," Rabastan Lestrange leaned over to whisper. "Your husband is in the Atrium."
Tom lifted his head to stare at his advisor. He quirked an eyebrow, waiting for an elaboration.
"Not exactly sure but it seems he has raised a ruckus there," Lestrange said, politely inclining
his head to gesture at his communicator parchment that kept him updated on the Ministry
events as he kept an eye on the log.
Tom clenched his jaw. If this was old Harry, it would be some petty drama, but with the new
one, he only hoped the feisty thing didn't curse someone in the middle of Atrium. Tom took a
deep breath and steepled his fingers in frustration as he stared at the clock.
"Sir?" Barty murmured. "I could go and see what's happening and show Harry assistance if
he is in trouble."
Tom shook his head. He glanced at Remus Lupin, the Chief Warlock, presiding over the
Wizengamot session, and when the man looked at him, he subtly waved his head. Remus was
a close friend of his father-in-law and was appointed as the Chief Warlock by the
Wizengamot by Tom's recommendation after James Potter asked him to.
Lupin wasn't hard to work with, but like his husband Sirius Black, the man seemed to dislike
Tom on some level. Remus and Black were Harry's godfathers and despite the brat's
incompetence, they somehow thought that Tom didn't deserve Harry. Lupin in a professional
capacity was quite supportive of Tom, no doubt because James Potter wanted Tom to
succeed.
"Order, order! I think it's time we brought this debate to a close. I am now calling the
adjournment of the debate on the 'Trade agreement with the Ministry of Magical Affairs of
France' motion. The Wizengamot will adjourn until tomorrow at 2:30 pm."
"Oh no, Mr Chief Warlock! We've only just started discussing the most important part of the
motion!" someone protested, making Tom mentally scoff. This wasn't a productive
discussion; they were talking in circles and wasting everyone's time. There was a chatter of
agreement from some of the others.
"Order!" Lupin slammed the gavel on his desk. "The debate has been ongoing for several
hours, and I think it's time we gave Members a break. The Wizengamot will reconvene
tomorrow to continue this debate."
There was noise of protest, but some of the more bored members seemed really happy about
having a break. Tom got up and motioned for his team to follow. The new Harry had a
temper, and Tom hoped he wasn't about to walk into Atrium and find some sleazy bastard's
entrails lying on the floor because he couldn't keep his hands to himself.
When they reached the Atrium though, the group of people gathered there didn't seem upset,
they looked shocked but none of them looked horrified. Barty hurried to open up space for
him as he walked through the crowd. As soon as Tom's eyes met Harry's, he paused. Harry
stood there in the Atrium, surrounded by all these Ministry workers and a couple of
journalists taking pictures. He had the missing child in his arms while Tom's secretary was
awkwardly trying to move people away from Entwhistle under a petrification spell—her
wand remaining firmly pointed at two others tied up and petrified on the floor.
"That's the Smiths' missing son," Lestrange said, surprised as if Tom needed commentary.
"Minister," Granger spoke awkwardly when she noticed him walking towards them. "Mr
Potter... Mr Riddle... I mean Harry... Well, Harry and I found some details on the newspaper,
and we weren't able to contact the Aurors, so we went to get the child. Mr Entwhistle is under
a Purpura spell and needs medical attention."
Tom stared at the man on the floor and detected a Time-Dilation spell. Purpura? That
explained the violence. There were murmurs among the people, and the reporters kept
shouting questions that the woman simply ignored.
"These two are definitely responsible," she said, glaring at the petrified men. "They attacked
us when we went to save the child."
"Sorry, we couldn't wait," Harry said, patting the child he was holding on the back and not
looking sorry at all.
Tom smiled at him, and Harry looked surprised. They stared at each other while his team
scrambled to call in the Ministry Auror department to come to the scene and apprehend the
criminals and take Entwhistle into the infirmary.
"This is perfect," Lestrange kept muttering. "Tomorrow all the papers will have your
husband's picture on the front page cradling that child and the articles will write about how a
Muggle-born Ministry worker saved the day."
Tom didn't respond, his attention concentrated on Harry standing there all pretty and
brimming with powerful magic. Ms Granger's hand was occasionally moving towards Harry
to shield him from the overeager Ministry employees, and Tom could tell that she was doing
it on instinct. This was what he wanted; for Harry to make friends and never leave. Every
connection this man made would be just another assurance for Tom.
"I want every paper with the picture of the Minister's husband and the missing child,"
Lestrange told his staffers. "Contact every news outlet and coordinate with our press office."
One of the healers reached out to take the child from Harry, but the child screeched and clung
to Harry tighter.
"Ah, I just fed him some biscuits," Harry laughed. "Probably likes me better for that. Hey,
sweety, I promise you'll be fine. They need to make sure you're healthy, okay?"
The child reluctantly turned around and opened his arms for the healer.
"You will need to accompany the Minister to meet the child's parents, Mr Potter-Riddle,"
Lestrange said. "This just solves all of our problems."
"Rabastan," Tom interrupted the man's overeager enthusiasm. "Harry, may I have a minute
with you?"
Harry looked around confused, but nodded. He walked towards Tom's outstretched arm and
allowed Tom to wrap his hand around his delicate shoulders. Tom could feel all eyes on
them, and he smirked, tightening his grip. He pictured the provocative headlines of
tomorrow's newspapers and for the first time in his life, revelled in the prospect of sharing
salacious gossip with the audience.
He dragged Harry away into an empty room and closed the door behind them.
"Are you okay?" he asked, running his hands over the sides of Harry's face.
He stared at Tom, confused, but didn't move away or stop Tom and nodded.
"Did you have fun with Ms Granger today?" he asked with an amused smile. "I knew the
moment we left the room you'd rope the poor woman into helping you hunt down those
criminals."
"Is that why you asked her to stay behind?" Harry asked, his pretty eyes wide. He looked
genuinely surprised. Tom wondered if his other self never indulged this man before. Because
truly, that would have been a crime. He was so adorable in his confusion.
"I want you to get the chance to show the people you were friends with who you are now,"
Tom said, watching Harry's expression for signs of approval and when he noticed the corners
of his pretty mouth open innocently, he reached with his thumb to trace them. "They will love
you. Ms Granger looked quite excited about what you did together."
"Thank you, Tom," he said, his voice barely above a whisper, and Tom found it delightful
how shy and vulnerable Harry sounded when he was treated gently.
"I still can't believe that you were able to find and save that boy before the Aurors did. I
should fire them all and have you run the whole thing," he said with a smirk. "Could save a
lot of resources on the allocated budget."
"I could," Tom said, leaning impossibly closer and hovering over his pretty husband's slight
form. "But what would people say?"
"That the Minister for Magic doesn't like incompetent Aurors?" Harry whispered, half-
closing his eyes as he stared up at him.
Two weeks of tentative glances and stolen touches, and Tom's patience was wearing thin. He
held Harry's face in his hands, Harry moved towards him, and Tom's lips crashed against
Harry's as he drew him closer into his arms. The slender body melted against Tom as he
brought his hands to wrap around him. Harry's soft gasps and throaty little mewls died with
every dip of his lips. Tom pushed him against the wall and squeezed his hips, pressing his
erection against Harry.
He was so turned on, he wanted to fuck him right in the middle of the Ministry, not even
caring that they were in a room where anyone could walk in at any moment. Harry smelled so
pleasant, like snowdrops, like cold winds, like flowers that bloom in spring, and like magic
that seemed so similar to Tom's. He wanted to tear the expensive fabric of Harry's clothes off
and bend him over the desk in the corner, then kiss every inch of his skin.
"Stay with me," he murmured between breathless gasps as he deepened the kiss. "Stay with
me here, please."
Harry didn't know what he was doing. It had been a week since the kiss, and they hadn't
talked about it just like they hadn't talked about the fact that Tom slept by his side. Every
night, he would come to bed when Harry fell asleep, and he would leave before Harry woke
up. There was just some kind of silent agreement not to discuss anything as if things were the
way they were supposed to be.
Tom had kissed him again, and Harry let him, but this time it wasn't because of intense
feelings, or the influence of hormones brought forth by a fight. There was no excuse to make
other than that he really liked him. Tom let him pretend that the kiss never happened, even
though he could tell from Tom's attitude that the kiss had very much happened, and Tom was
just waiting for him.
He felt free with Tom now that he knew the truth about him. Harry didn't have to hide or
pretend with him. It was strange that he felt at ease only with this man.
"Master Harry so pretty," Dobby said, attaching the Ministry of Magic gem-encrusted pin on
the lapels of his suit jacket.
Harry stood up and stared at himself in the large mirror. His hair was brushed back, showing
his flawless skin and scarless forehead. It was so strange to stare at himself in the mirror and
not see that familiar scar on his face. Harry wanted it back. It felt almost wrong to look at
himself and see this strange creature staring back at him.
Harry still couldn't believe how bizarrely and eerily beautiful he looked. No, beautiful wasn't
the right word. Tom was a beautiful man. Harry... Harry looked like an incarnation of magic,
unnaturally perfect that his own face evoked feelings of awe in his own mind.
He ran his palm over his bare neck, his fingers brushing against the white silk shirt and dark
wool jacket. Harry wasn't wearing a tie. His neck was bare, his pulse so fast under his own
fingers.
Harry cleared his throat and headed for the fireplace. He was planning to go with Tom, but
Tom had some kind of unexpected business to take care of so he left earlier. The Ministry ball
had already been postponed once, so Harry reassured Tom that he would come on his own so
Tom could go and take care of whatever new scandal was about to break. It's not like he
didn't know how to use the Floo.
When magic transported him to the Ministry, and he stepped out of the fireplace, there was a
large crowd waiting for him. Harry wished he had his invisibility cloak. The camera lights
blinded him. Tom was always there to shield him from these people, and now that Harry was
on his own, he wished he had asked Tom to finish his work at the Ministry and come back to
take him to the ball. He shook his head.
For fuck's sake, he was not a two-year-old! He could bloody take care of himself.
Harry pulled out his wand and cast an anti-flash charm and then pushed the people out of his
way. They stared at him confused as they stumbled backwards. Harry walked through the
mob towards the Ballroom. Thankfully, the reception hall for Ministry balls and official
parties was on level 8, and he didn't have to take the lift. The doorman hurried to open the
door for him, and Harry stepped inside.
Beautiful music was playing. All eyes turned to Harry as he joined the party.
"Harry," Pansy Parkinson screamed, grabbing the fabric of her fancy silk dress to lift it up
and run to him. "Look at you, you sly bitch, you look so hot."
She hugged Harry tightly, making Harry feel horrified and then moved back to look at him
appreciatively.
"Is the Minister keeping you hostage or something?" she asked with a smirk, leaning close to
whisper into Harry's ear. "We haven't heard from you in ages. Did he tie you up to the bed so
you won't be out and about as you wish?"
"Oh, don't look so coy," she lightly elbowed him, giggling like she was amused by her own
words. "You should hear what theories Lavender had when you kept declining shopping trips
with us. Don't worry, we understand."
"Potter," Lavender's cheerful voice made him turn around. "Your husband has finally let you
out of his sex dungeon, huh?"
"Morgana, you are so crude, Lavender," Pansy laughed. "But seriously, Harry, are you fine?"
Harry nodded. Despite everything, these girls seemed to care about their friend.
"Did he forbid you from going out?" Pansy asked, grabbing a glass of drink from the tray that
the waiter was carrying. "Because I can see Riddle being a controlling tyrant like that. He's
probably jealous."
"I am fine," Harry shook his head. "Tom and I have... well, our relationship is fine. You don't
need to worry."
Lavender and Pansy stared at him for a moment before exchanging glances.
"Harry, darling," Tom's voice made them all turn around.
Harry pressed his lips together not to gasp as Tom looked so handsome. He always looked
good, but today he somehow looked more imposing and elegant. It must have been his choice
of suit or the silver in his tie that brought out the pale colouration of his eyes. Tom stared
back at him, the smile on his face twisted into a strange expression, and for a moment Harry
was concerned that something about the way he looked made Tom upset, but the man leaned
forward and wrapped his arm around Harry's waist.
"You are so pretty," he said, making Harry's face heat up. "And finally you are as exquisite
inside as you look outside."
Pansy and Lavender covered their mouths. Clearly, they weren't expecting this handsy
welcome by the Minister.
Harry blinked, wondering if it was a good idea. He was a bad dancer. The last time he had
danced was at the Yule party at Hogwarts, and he was pretty sure he had been stepping on
Parvati's shoes the entire night. Lavender's whistle brought him back to reality, where Tom
was watching him intently.
"Go have fun, Potter," Lavender said and added, snickering. "We will catch up later. Don't
make the Minister wait or you might get punished."
"What was she speaking about?" he asked, patting Harry's back gently as if trying to ease his
anxiety.
"She's fantasising about you tying me up in some dungeon and not letting me out," Harry said
dryly, shaking his head. "I think she's already drunk."
Tom laughed, guiding Harry to where people were dancing. The brilliant illumination in the
room and the soft music made Harry feel like he was spinning himself.
"Don't tempt me," he said and then held Harry's waist and hand and twirled him gently. "I am
only joking, darling. You're simply too brilliant for anyone to dream of hiding you away."
Harry shook his head, and almost fell on Tom as he messed up his footwork, but Tom seemed
to know how to navigate and simply lifted Harry off his feet and moved him around in the air
with ease.
"Unless you want me to hide you away?" he whispered into Harry's ear when he dropped
Harry to his feet. "Would you want me to keep you all to myself? Because I'd want to. All
you need to say is yes, and I'll steal you away from the rest of the world."
There was so much amusement in his voice that Harry wasn't really sure if Tom was teasing
him or telling him something else. His heart was drumming in his chest from their proximity.
"That sounds like a threat," Harry told him, letting Tom move him to the music.
"Harry?" an unfamiliar voice called his name, making Harry turn his head around as Tom
gripped him tighter, almost painfully so.
The man standing there with auburn hair was staring at him intently, his eyes focused on
Tom's arm around his waist and shoulder. His knuckles were white where he was squeezing
the glass in his hand. He looked quite upset and was glaring at Tom as if he wanted to kill
him. He was young, perhaps the same age as Harry, but Harry didn't recognise him.
"Mr Grindelwald," Tom's jaw tightened, his smile dropping from his face and his voice
coming out rough and curt. "I hope you are enjoying the evening."
Understanding crossed Harry's face. So this was his counterpart's lover? He was a handsome
man—tall, well-built, with an attractive face—but Tom looked better.
"The evening is lovely, Mr Riddle," Gellert said through gritted teeth, maintaining eye
contact with Tom. "I am quite impressed that the Ministry has managed to organise the ball
without any further hiccups."
Tom's jaw set tightly, his lips pressing together in contempt for a moment before he nodded
politely, tilting his head with a smirk.
"An apt observation, Mr Grindelwald," he drawled, his tone measured. "As you are aware,
we couldn't resume the festivities so soon after the incident. The criminals responsible needed
to be dealt with first; I am sure you understand. Rest assured, all necessary precautions have
been taken to prevent any further... miscalculations. After all, in a game as delicate as this, it's
vital to keep one's adversaries carefully monitored. It would be a shame to let them try
again."
Gellert's expression became steely; he shot a resentful glare at Tom before his gaze abruptly
shifted to Harry. Confusion flooded Harry—he wasn't exactly sure what the fuck was
happening. Sensing his unease, Tom drew him closer, encircling his arm possessively around
Harry's waist.
"It's a delight to see you, Harry," Gellert smiled at him, his eyes narrowing at where Tom's
hands rested. "I hope we can—"
Her eyes flickered to Harry, an amused smirk creeping to her lips as she tightened her hold on
Grindelwald's arm. The smug look on her face said she was well pleased with herself. Gellert
turned his eyes briefly to her, grimaced, but allowed himself to be dragged away to join the
others dancing. Harry exhaled a little, exhausted from the whole exchange, and turned his
attention back to Tom.
Tom smiled at him, looking somehow excited, and extended his hand, gently brushing back
Harry's hair. He placed his hand on Harry's back and grasped his other hand with his own,
pulling him forward.
"Shall we continue our dance, darling?" he murmured, guiding Harry to the flow of the music
playing in the background, the sound of a string quartet weaving a melodic rhythm that
enveloped the Ministry's spellbound walls.
The ballroom was grand, an elegant space suffused with soft golden light from enchanted
chandeliers that hung like jewels from the high ceiling. The polished wooden floor gleamed,
reflecting the elegant dresses and sharp suits of the dancers gliding across it.
Couples moved in graceful harmony, their movements delicate, with poise and precision.
Gowns of sumptuous fabrics flowed around, swirling in a cascade of colour as they turned
and twirled, the fabric catching the light in a dance of its own, magic and enchantments
filling the air.
Tom held Harry gently, lifting him off his feet and spinning him around, his hands looping
around Harry's body possessively, almost as if he were worried someone would snatch Harry
right out of his arms.
"So this was Gellert Grindelwald?" Harry asked, gasping a bit after being spun about and
returned to Riddle's arms. "The other Harry's... lover?"
"It was," Tom confirmed, holding him intimately. "I take it you were not friends with him in
your world?"
"Well, he didn't exist in my world," Harry responded. "Grindelwald Sr never had any
children."
"Your world sounds amazing," Tom quipped. "The more I hear, the more I want to know,
baby."
Well, about that... Harry didn't agree his world was amazing, but he also didn't want to tell
Tom about Voldemort and his psychotic murderous crusade against Muggle-borns, using it as
a pretext for gaining power.
As the music swelled, Tom led Harry into a slow, sweeping motion, moving him away from
his body in a elegant arc. With a subtle shift in weight, he stepped back and slightly lowered
his stance, all the while holding Harry's hand, directing him into a deep bend. Harry dipped
gracefully, his torso arching backward, feeling like his back might snap.
But Tom was gentle with him, cautious like he was handling something precious, and it made
Harry feel things deep inside.
At the lowest point, there was a pause, and the two locked eyes. Tom held him gently,
intimately, his hands firm around Harry, then pulled him back with strength and finesse.
Harry was smoothed back to a standing position, spinning slightly before being drawn in
close again.
He inhaled sharply. Tom stared back at him, his eyes dropping to his lips, and then he tilted
his head, bent down and kissed him. Melting into Tom's embrace, his cheeks heated up,
excitement coursing through his veins.
This was happening again. He didn't know what to do, but it felt right. Fuck!
He wrapped his arms around Tom's neck and let him kiss him senseless.
Gasps in the background, muffled by the music and the loud chatter of drunk wizards and
witches reached his ears.
When he opened his eyes, Tom was smiling at him. Harry smiled back, his heart drumming
fast. He kissed Tom again, and it seemed there was nothing he could do to stop himself from
constantly being pulled back to his man, almost as if they were tied to each other by magic,
by the universe, by something peculiar and unexplainable. Harry couldn't lie to himself
anymore. He was simply too attracted to Tom.
And Tom... Tom was not Voldemort, so it was fine. It was fine to tell Tom that he'd stay...
Harry's eyes swept over to the others in the ballroom, and he caught Gellert Grindelwald
glaring at him and Tom. He looked upset, his fists clenched, his eyebrows furrowed, while
Daphne Greengrass tried in vain to get his attention. Harry didn't want to get in the middle of
that. Tom placed a quick kiss on the corner of his forehead, and Harry turned to look at him,
but Tom was staring at Gellert, smirking at him, mirth and delight twisting his expression.
The people in the ballroom who weren't already drunk were staring at them. Riddle's
behaviour was definitely not characteristic? Lestrange was gaping at them in complete shock,
while Crouch, in the corner, looked almost ecstatic.
"Would you like to drink something, darling?" Tom asked, appearing entirely unperturbed by
the spectacle they were creating, as he casually grabbed a drink when the server stopped by
offering refreshments.
Harry picked up the glass and took a small sip. Alcohol was overrated. It tasted nothing
special and just burned the back of his throat when he swallowed it.
"Minister Riddle," Lestrange said, approaching with his companion, a rather rotund man with
a very lively expression on his face. "Allow me to present Monsieur Pierre Bonaccord.
Monsieur Bonaccord is a distinguished Abraxan breeder whose contributions are invaluable
to the British Ministry of Magic. He supplies us with Abraxan hair, which is integral to the
formulation of the Strong Exstimulo Potion utilised by the Auror Department in the
execution of their duties. Our partnership with Monsieur Bonaccord is essential to ensuring
the effectiveness and safety of our operations."
"Pleasure to meet you, Monsieur Bonaccord," Tom said politely, reaching out to shake the
man's hand.
"Oh, the pleasure is all mine," the man hurried to say, shaking Tom's hand before his eyes
bulged out comically wide at Harry. "You must be the Minister's enchanting spouse. You are
even more beautiful than the legends proclaim."
The man grasped both of Harry's hands with his chubby ones, and to Harry's utter horror,
kissed them with reverence.
Harry shifted awkwardly, unsure how to respond, but before he could wrack his brain for
anything suitable to say, Gellert appeared out of nowhere, with Greengrass hanging on his
arm.
"Monsieur Bonaccord," he exclaimed, sounding excited and extending his hand for a
handshake. "Such a pleasant surprise to see you here."
"Oh, Gellert," the man smiled, shaking Grindelwald Jr's hand. "You are back home with your
uncle, I see. How is your father doing? I didn't see him here tonight."
"Yes," Gellert laughed, "he couldn't make it unfortunately. Too busy with work."
"Do send him my regards," Bonaccord beamed. "I must insist on meeting him next time he
graces us with his presence in Paris."
"I'll make sure to tell him," Gellert smiled, taking a sip from the firewhisky. "I do hope you're
enjoying the evening here."
"Yes," the man said, raising his glass and taking a sip, and then joked, "the whisky is good
enough even for my Abraxan to go wild over this."
"We are pleased to hear that," Lestrange interjected promptly, clearly displeased that the
conversation was veering towards the personal rather than maintaining its formal tone.
"Perhaps we could explore a potential partnership in that regard, wherein we could arrange
for the whisky that your esteemed creatures so favour, Monsieur Bonaccord."
"That sounds an excellent idea, actually," the man agreed, taking another sip from his drink.
"Abraxans are very particular creatures. They like what they like. They are creatures of
happiness, only ones left of their kind, so I need to care for them with utmost love."
"The only ones left?" Harry asked, surprised. "There are no Abraxans being created? Why?"
"Created?" The man stared at Harry, confused. "What do you mean created?"
"That's true," the man said enthusiastically, gesturing in agreement. "My Abraxans trace their
origin to a particularly strong Patronus cast by my great ancestor. Since then, though, no one
has managed to conjure such powerful magic. Most people can't cast a Patronus at all, and
those who can rarely manage a corporeal one. No one has ever summoned one strong enough
to take physical form and never fade away."
"The British Isles are so dreary, the only things we manage to grow here are Dementors,"
Gellert joked.
Tom's head turned towards him, and he stared at Gellert, eyes scanning him mockingly.
"Ah, yes, the Dementors—dark creatures, indeed. But it seems we've also developed a certain
appreciation for their... pruning services," Tom said with a smirk. "It's unfortunate, though,
that they wiped out the scum from the orphanage attack before they could face justice. But I
suppose fate had its own way of delivering retribution."
"I don't think it's prudent to blame fate for the incompetence of the Ministry handling this so
atrociously," he said through clenched teeth, unable to hide his disdain. The smile on Tom's
face only widened.
Harry sighed. He was getting annoyed. He took a small sip from the firewhisky in his glass
and made a disgusted face, remembering why he hadn't been eager to drink it in the first
place.
"Well, I hope, Mr Grindelwald, our incompetence won't stop you from enjoying the evening,"
Tom mocked.
"Thank you for your concern," Gellert licked his lips, his voice lowering and eyes sweeping
to Harry, "I was actually hoping to have the pleasure of a dance with you, Harry. Would you
do me the honour?"
He extended his hand, brandishing it in front of Harry like it was the Holy Grail. Harry stared
at it, panic and irritation kicking in. Daphne let out an annoyed huff, flipping her hair back
with all the grace of a snake whose lunch was running late. Clearly, she was less than pleased
about being sidelined during the grand ball.
Harry's eyes darted over to Tom silently imploring him for help, hoping Tom would channel
some of that usually intimidating possessiveness to rescue him from the clutches of this
clearly unhinged stranger who seemed to think he could just sweep Harry off his feet like
some sort of third-rate prince charming.
Riddle looked at him with a sweet smile, letting an amused sound leave his lips as he leaned
down and planted a kiss on top of his head.
"I will hold your drink so you can dance, love" Bonaccord declared suddenly as he snatched
Harry's glass before he had a chance to protest.
Harry held himself back from rolling his eyes and reluctantly grabbed Grindelwald's hand.
He looked at Tom before Gellert dragged him away, and Salazar Slytherin's creepy hot heir
somehow looked pleased with something. What was Riddle's deal? Normally he would throw
a fit and now he was eager to have Harry dance with this nutjob.
The music played softly, and Gellert placed his hand on Harry's waist. Sighing, he decided to
go with it. This could be an opportunity to dig deeper into his counterpart's life. He still had
no clue who had murdered him and what had happened to him.
Harry regarded him with all the warmth of a frostbitten snowman, trying to gauge his
sincerity.
Grindelwald spun him around instead. They glided across the dance floor; he swept Harry
into a quick dip, leaned down and whispered, "I was trying to free you from him."
Bringing Harry back to a standing position, they slid away from each other and then swept
back into a close hold.
"I don't remember you asking my opinion," Harry retorted, annoyed by the bastard's playful
tone as if it were no big deal. "Do I look like I need rescuing?"
Gellert stared at him, confused, his eyebrows furrowing in clear bewilderment. The music
picked up as the tempo increased.
"What has he done to you?" he asked, sounding almost disgusted. "When the very few of my
men managed to return to me and told me you refused to come, I thought they were covering
their incompetence with excuses, but—"
"Did they also tell you that they drowned me, and I would have died if my husband hadn't
killed the man who cast the spell?" Harry asked coldly.
"What?" Gellert's hold on Harry's hand tightened. "Your husband? Is that how you are
referring to that Mudblood now?"
"Mudblood? Really? That's rich coming from someone who clearly got their manners from
the bottom of a troll's shoe," Harry spat, making a disgusted face. "You make it very hard for
me not to punch you in the face."
"Why are you acting this way?" he asked. "Did he put a spell on you?"
"Acting what way?" Harry asked, getting annoyed that he was wasting his time with this
arsehole. "Can you be more vague? What is it that confuses you? The fact that I won't
tolerate you being a disgusting bigot, or that I am upset that you nearly killed me?"
"I am sorry for the incompetence of those men, but I had to get you."
"Well, I don't remember you asking me if I wanted to be gotten," Harry said curtly.
"Everyone here seems to be putting their opinions, wants and needs before mine and sure, I
am used to it, but viewing this from the perspective of an outsider does make me think I
should have never been okay with that."
"So what? Now you are planning to stay with Riddle?" Gellert asked, rage twisting his
features.
Harry's eyes glided over to where Tom was standing, conversing with various witches and
wizards. Their eyes met for a split second, and Tom's smile reached his eyes. Harry looked
back at Gellert.
"Maybe," he said. "I don't see how it's any of your business. I am married to him after all,
aren't I?"
"It is my business," Gellert lost it, tightening his grip around Harry's hand in a bruising
manner. "You are mine. You'll always be mine. I don't care what your father says; you were
meant to be mine."
Harry was done with this arsehole's bullshit. How could the other Harry even put up with this
fucking nonsense? This bloke was a total moron—rude, judgmental and really had no respect
for Harry, whom he supposedly loved. Just another arse who thought he had any say about
Harry's life.
"Right," he said, rolling his eyes. "I am sorry I had forgotten to ask permission from you,
Gellert. It sounds like we need to sort out some very misplaced expectations. I'm flattered
that you've chosen me to be your personal trophy, but I'll pass. Also, stay the fuck away from
me. I don't need to be fucking rescued."
Gellert stared shocked, but before he could so much as say another word, Harry wrenched his
arms away and pushed Gellert back. Without saying another word, he marched off, leaving
Gellert standing on the dancefloor still utterly stunned. Tom's eyes met his and he grinned
like a maniac, turning slightly to the side and extending his arm as if in invitation for Harry.
Harry headed towards him. He chose Tom. He wasn't planning on choosing Gellert. He
barely heard the man's name, but he wasn't planning to leave now. The conversation with the
git convinced him of how much better of a person Tom was, despite all his political
machinations, and maybe Harry could even steer him away from some of the crazier things.
Tom had been sweet to him since he'd found out that Harry was from a different world and
had given him space, support, his friendship and had done nothing but encourage him.
"Harry," Hermione's excited voice stopped him. She was tipsy and looked a little drunk. "Oh
Merlin, you are just so pretty. I've been thinking about you, you know? What we did was so
much fun. I think I am going to take Auroral exams and become an Auror."
Harry laughed and helped her steady herself when she almost fell down.
"Auror Weasley, Ron, I mean is there too," she said, her voice slurred, eyes gleaming. "Do
you know if they have any workplace romance restrictions in the department? No, right?"
"I don't think any department in the Ministry has any workplace romance restrictions," Harry
laughed, thinking about Hermione trying to become an Auror because Ron was one made
him feel both comforted and saddened at the same time. "Are you planning on dating Ron?"
Hermione's face heated up instantly. She nervously rubbed her face, fidgeting with the glass
in her hand. Her eyes flitted through the crowd of people as if trying to make sure that Ron
was nowhere near around them and then craned her neck to whisper into Harry's ear.
"Hermione?" Ron's voice made her freeze. "I mean, Ms Granger... ah... sorry... I was just
thinking maybe we could dance?"
Hermione closed her eyes embarrassed. Most likely she thought Ron had heard her. But Ron
was quite oblivious, alright!
"Hi Ron," Harry said, waving at him. "So nice to see you here. Hermione and I were just
talking about you."
Hermione's face morphed into an expression of utter horror. The warmth in her eyes that she
held for Harry wore off, and she looked betrayed.
"Oh, hi Harry," Ron stared at him wistfully, looking like he wanted to reach out and hug
Harry but refrained from doing so. "It's nice seeing you here too. I wanted to thank you and
Ms Granger for the extraordinary courage you have displayed helping the Auror department
with catching the criminals from the last time..."
"It was our pleasure," Harry smiled. "It was quite fun actually to investigate and catch them,
so much so that Hermione was thinking about joining the Auror department. She's such a
badass that I am afraid the Auror department doesn't even deserve her."
Hermione's eyes widened. It was like the entire time she was waiting for Harry to say
something mean. She turned around to face Ron, a blush on her face, slightly wobbling from
all the alcohol in her system.
"Oh," Ron turned red too. "I'd be happy to have an Auror as capable and smart as Ms
Granger."
"Hermione," Hermione corrected, slurring her own name and fumbling the glass in her hand.
Harry reached out to steady her, but before he could do so, she grabbed Ron and kissed him
right there, right in front of everyone. Harry grabbed Hermione's glass from her hands and
decided to leave them in their little world, as Ron melted into Hermione's arms and hugged
her tightly. Harry put the glass down on a nearby table and inspected the crowd surrounding
him. The guests were drunk. It was a wonder how they could get so intoxicated so quickly.
Harry's eyes drifted to Tom. The man was chatting away with some fresh faces. Harry smiled,
his heart filled with warmth at the sight of Tom. He was just about to make his way through
the throng when he was nearly bowled over and someone spilled their firewhisky on him.
"Potter," Greengrass sneered. "It seems you think the world belongs to you, what with not
watching where you're going."
"Oh yes, because your navigation skills are the gold standard, are they?" Harry shot back, his
patience wearing thin. "Apologies for intruding on your flawless trajectory through the
galaxy. My mistake."
She opened her mouth to retort, but he waved his hand dismissively and headed towards the
door in the furthest corner of the ballroom. He needed to go and clean the spillage. It wasn't a
big deal anyway. Harry didn't really care, but there was no need to provide the Daily
Prophet or any nosy bugger with an excuse to churn out their usual drivel about alcohol
stains on his clothes—these creeps were obsessed with him.
He opened the door and walked into the corridor. The on-duty Aurors gave him a sideways
look but didn't stop him as he slipped into the first office he came across. Pulling out his
wand, he muttered a few cleaning and drying charms on his shirt, then turned to head back to
the ballroom. But the door to the office opened, and Grindelwald walked inside. Harry
sighed.
Not this, not now! He didn't have the patience to deal with the other Harry's side-piece.
Gellert was a right twat, and Harry honestly wanted to go back home. With his wand out, he
thought that if the git tried to pull the same arsefuckery here, nothing would stop Harry from
unleashing some of that pent-up energy and wiping the floor with Gellert's smug face.
"I knew you'd be waiting for me," Gellert said with a smirk, his eyes stalking Harry as he
walked towards him.
Gellert stepped forward and stood directly in front of Harry. Harry almost felt bad for the
man. The one Gellert loved was already dead. He watched him carefully as Gellert grabbed
him and kissed him, shocking Harry. Harry stood frozen for a moment before he managed to
push Gellert away.
"Did that Mudblood put an Imperius on you?" Gellert asked with venom in his voice. "I
wouldn't be surprised. Clearly, Riddle doesn't give a shit about anyone but himself.
Pretending to care about magical orphans? Give me a break; it's all a ploy to strengthen his
power. He even bragged earlier about killing my men who tried to stop him."
Any speck of pity Harry felt for Gellert vanished the moment he opened his mouth and
hurled around bigoted insults.
Harry saw red. So many people were injured, and Grindelwald was bragging about it.
"Don't worry your pretty little head about it. I will bring Riddle to his knees and take you
from him."
Gellert clearly was an idiot with an inflated sense of ego. His attempts to take Harry from
Tom had so far resulted in many near-death experiences. The only reason Harry had survived
was because, unlike his counterpart, he was a skilled soldier, had fought in the war, faced his
fair share of dangers and duelled a horcrux-proof maniac. It was very possible that Gellert's
careless little games with Tom had resulted in the other Harry's death.
"I just need to know what that bastard did to you," Gellert said, pointing his wand at Harry
and casting Legilimency.
Harry gritted his teeth, clenching his wand in his hand. Gellert's magic hit his Occlumency
shields. His eyes widened when Harry blocked him with ease and pushed him away.
Gellert's shock wore off, and he tried to push into Harry's mind again, pissing off Harry even
more. He lifted his wand and pointed it at the man. Gellert didn't seem concerned, but that
was before Harry tore his Occlumency shields apart like they were made of paper and forced
his way into the git's mind. Gellert took a shuddering breath, staggered backwards, staring at
Harry in complete disbelief and trying to push him out.
What Harry saw made him clench his wand harder in his grip. Gellert was behind the
orphanage attack, Gellert was behind framing the Muggle-born wizard for kidnapping a
child. Gellert was insane. A few memories of the other Harry and Gellert lying in bed in each
other's arms swam past Harry's mind, making him wrinkle his face in distaste.
"You piece of shit," Harry shouted. "You endangered a child. Got him nearly killed in the
most horrific way all so you can say Muggle-borns are bad. What the bloody fuck is wrong
with you?"
"Imperio," Gellert shouted, pointing his wand at Harry. "Your magic is acting up again. Come
to me, Harry. I'll take you away from all this right now. Don't be difficult."
Harry lifted his wand and sent Gellert flying. His body collided with the wall and he fell on
the ground.
Gellert now looked terrified. He lifted his wand and tried a petrification spell against Harry,
but Harry easily blocked it and sent his own hex at him. Gellert barely blocked it and then got
to his feet, looking at Harry in confusion and with clear fear.
"Has he done something to you?" he said, trying to block the stream of spells Harry shot his
way. "You're different. How are you duelling like this?"
They continued exchanging curses, and Gellert seemed to be getting out of breath. Harry was
getting bored. This idiot didn't have Tom's finesse and skill to make the fight entertaining and
honestly, Harry was done with him. This man needed to be stopped. He needed to tell Tom
about Gellert being behind all the attacks.
The door opened, and Tom rushed in. He took in the sight of Harry and Gellert fighting. After
a second of observing and realising that Harry was wiping the floor with Gellert, a smile
curled his lips. He pulled out his wand.
"What have you done to Harry, you Mudblood bastard?" Gellert screamed, turning his
attention to Tom and trying to duel him instead.
"I find you in a room with my husband with your wand pointed at him, and you dare to ask
me what I have done to him, Gellert?" Tom mocked, pushing Gellert's attacks away with no
real effort.
"You've done something to him or he wouldn't have refused my kiss," Gellert said, enraged.
"You tried to kiss my husband?" Tom asked, anger seeping into his voice as he attacked
Gellert.
"We both know that he loves me, and you are just a convenient tool for James Potter and
nothing else," Gellert screamed.
Tom punched him in the face. Harry stood there confused and lost as the two started fist
fighting each other like a bunch of drunk Muggles. He tried to break them up, but they both
seemed so caught up in it that they pushed Harry away, nearly making him fall down.
"So far your mediocre attempts have done nothing but irritate me. You'll face the same fate as
those fools you have sent to attack me during the orphanage opening."
Harry's eyes widened. Tom knew that Gellert was behind all this and hadn't sent Aurors to
arrest him? Why? Was it because he wanted to play political games with him? He was done
with both right now. He rolled his eyes, seeing the two fight like they were little boys over
him of all people. Gellert was a fucking monster, and Tom was an arsehole.
He headed to the door, opened it and left, slamming it back shut. Loud argument coming
from the corner caught his attention. It was Theo Nott and Daphne Greengrass.
"I've done everything for you, and it's never enough!" Nott shot back, frustration spilling
over. "All you ever talk about is Grindelwald! I risked my career for you, and I swear Riddle
nearly killed me!"
"What do you want, Potter?" she sneered. "Riddle wasn't enough for you? You just needed
Gellert too?"
"I am sick of your catty nonsense," he told her dismissively. "I couldn't care less about
Gellert. You want him? Go for it! Riddle too, for all I care. Honestly, just screw them both!"
Daphne shut her mouth and looked pale and scared for some reason. Whatever! Harry turned
his attention to Nott, gave him a warning look and then stormed off to the ballroom, leaving
their jaws hanging.
Tom saw red. He was pissed. He had always been able to control himself perfectly, but seeing
Gellert extending his filthy hands towards Harry—his Harry—made him want to murder him
slowly. He wiped his mouth, staring down at Gellert's bloodied nose, still panting on the
ground, and felt a satisfaction he had never experienced before.
"Stay the bloody fuck away from my husband, Grindelwald," he warned. "I will kill you if I
see you around him again. Even your daddy and uncle wouldn't be able to save you. Harry
doesn't want you. He's mine."
Tom threw him one last look, fixed his suit, and headed out. He returned to the ballroom, but
Harry was nowhere in sight. He surveyed the room until his pretty husband's beautiful face
came into view. Harry was visibly trying to avoid his cousin, Draco Malfoy, who stood
before him, pleading.
"I'll hex you, Malfoy," Harry shot back, his eyes flashing with irritation. The pretty boy
crossed his arms, wand tightly clenched in his delicate hands.
"Harry?"
Harry turned to him, a pouty glare on his pretty face that did nothing to twist his features.
"Done rolling on the floor with Gellert?" he asked, an edge of sarcasm lacing his tone. "Are
you sure he was the other Harry's lover and not yours? You seemed a little too into it."
Tom blinked, amusement flickering across his face, and then a smirk broke through.
"Are you jealous, darling?"
"I think you are jealous," he teased, his voice low and playful.
"Draco," Tom replied coolly, his attention shifting with casual ease. "I hope you are enjoying
your evening, if you'll excuse me. Harry, darling, can I have a word?"
"I sense you're upset," Tom observed. "Did Gellert do something or...?"
"You knew that Gellert is behind the attacks at the orphanage," Harry said. "You knew, and
you were pretending you didn't know anything. Why? Why haven't you involved the Auror
department? Were you hoping he'd hurt more people?"
"You are upset about that?" Tom asked, looking at Harry incredulously. "Harry, darling, it's
more complicated than you think. Gellert wields considerable influence, supported by his
father and uncle. I suspected it was him all along, but dealing with Gellert demands a careful
approach."
"You orchestrated the Dementor attack on his henchmen," Harry said. "You clearly don't like
doing things properly, always plotting and scheming even though you are the Minister."
Harry was being unreasonable again. Tom just didn't understand why he cared so much about
how Tom conducted his politics. Dragging Grindelwald into Azkaban on a personal vendetta
would be a foolish move; it would only invite accusations of persecution against a political
rival. Grindelwald's spawn had too much power to confront openly. As Minister, Tom had no
intentions of taking him on directly. Instead, Gellert needed to be eliminated from the
political chessboard in a manner that was subtle and strategic.
Tom was going to crush Gellert like a worthless pest. Harry didn't need to know that though.
"Darling," Tom reached out to hold Harry's hands, and when the pretty man didn't push him
away, he decided to pull Harry closer. "You think I want Gellert prancing around after what
he's done? He is a threat, and I'd be happy to see him behind bars, but you do understand that
there is no evidence connecting him to the attacks. I realised it was him behind all this after
he sent men to kidnap you, and their clothes gave them away. As the Minister for Magic, I
can't accuse people left and right of political treason, especially someone as influential as
him. You understand?"
Harry's shoulders slumped forward, and Tom couldn't help but notice the way the lurne's lips
pressed tightly together—a betraying sign of guilt threatening to spill over. The remorse
clung to him like a shroud, his pretty features focused on Tom.
"Sorry," he said. "I guess I can't look at you and not see the other you."
"The other me?" Tom cupped Harry's face intimately. "Did he do something to make you
doubt my sincerity?"
"It's nothing," Harry murmured. "I am sorry. I am sorry about all this. Gellert honestly pissed
me off. He was a right arse. Can't believe any version of me would put up with that. Spouting
nonsense and being an obnoxious loser."
Tom caressed his face and leaned down to capture Harry's lips in a tender kiss. Harry melted
into him, hands on Tom's chest, body pressed against Tom's, so slender and pretty.
"Gellert was definitely surprised to be bested by you," Tom murmured, lips curling into a
smirk. "You should have seen his face."
"He's such a prick, bigoted prat, kept calling you Mudblood," Harry mumbled awkwardly,
making Tom tense. "When it's not even true. Wanted to curse his stupid face and—"
"When it's not even true?" Tom interrupted him. "What do you mean?"
An adorable flush covered Harry's face, and he fidgeted awkwardly, suddenly realising what
he had blurted out.
"It's... well..."
"Did you know my parents in your world?" Tom asked, his voice reserved but a flicker of
excitement creeping to the surface.
Tom had always hoped, always looked for his parents; he didn't care if they were both
Muggles or wizards, he just wanted to know who he was, but there was no trace of his
parents. It was as if he had popped into the world out of nowhere. Harry's nervous face told
him that he knew something.
"Harry?"
"One of your parents was magical," he said, making Tom's heart beat faster. "And the other
was a Muggle."
"Was?" Tom clarified. "They were both dead? Do you know their names?"
"Tom," Harry gulped. "I don't think trying to know about your other self is a good idea. You
don't understand. He was very different from you, and well, I don't want to speak about that
man."
"I have searched for my parents for years," Tom murmured gently, trying to coax the
information out of Harry. "I didn't find anything. And here you are, knowing something about
me that no one knows, and you don't want to tell me? Please, darling... I have the right to
know."
Harry rubbed his face and bit his lip in hesitation. What was it that made him so reluctant to
reveal the truth to Tom? Surely, he wasn't Potter Sr's bastard son, born out of wedlock and
conceived by some Muggle woman. A strange part of him entertained the idea, and that
would have explained James Potter's eagerness to marry them despite Tom being a nobody.
But surely he looked nothing like the man.
"Your mother was a witch," Harry said, taking a deep breath. "Your father was a Muggle."
Thank Merlin, he wasn't fathered by Potter. That would have caused quite the scandal, but
then why would Harry be so hesitant?
"Tom, you must have grown up talking to snakes, and they must have found you and spoken
back to you," Harry hissed in Parseltongue to Tom's surprise all of a sudden. "Do you know
why?"
"Are we related?" Tom asked. "Is that why you speak Parseltongue? I don't think my ex-
husband did. But you clearly do. Were we related? Is that why you are reluctant to tell me?"
Surely, Lily Evans wasn't his mother, although that would have made more sense. Her family
didn't live in Britain, and Tom searched for his parents here. Evanses had a long line of
obscure and unique magical heritages, like his husband's Alluran heritage. He wouldn't be
surprised to find out they had Parselmouths too, and maybe this Harry was one instead of
being a lurne, and now he had both—a clear perfection.
"What?" Harry choked, looking around terrified, worried someone might have heard Tom.
"No! Why would you think that? Merlin! No, we are not siblings, half-siblings, or related
beyond what all wizards and witches are related to one another in Britain."
"Gaunt?" Tom blinked, confused. "The Gaunt family has died out. Everyone knows that.
They were the last descendants of Salazar Slytherin. There are no Gaunts alive. Merope
Gaunt died in the 1920s."
"Yeah, she died in 1926 after giving birth to you. Tom Marvolo Riddle."
Tom laughed.
"Are you teasing me, darling?" he asked, searching Harry's eyes for deception. "Are you
telling me I was born in 1926?"
Harry didn't respond for a moment. He looked at Tom with hesitation, shaking his head as if
trying to convince himself to back out. With a reassuring hand on Harry's back, Tom tried to
comfort him, to lull him, to coax him into his arms, hoping that Harry would open up about
his other self. Silence stretched, but then Harry nodded to himself and cleared his throat.
There was determination in his eyes.
"In my world, you did," he said, his voice trembling slightly. "You were born in 1926, grew
up in an orphanage, and attended Hogwarts. You found out that your father was a Muggle
named Tom Riddle and killed him when you were 16."
"In my world, you made up a new name for yourself," Harry murmured. "Voldemort."
Tom's heart slowed down, his breathing hitched as a cold wave passed through his body.
Harry didn't notice anything.
"We are not related," he continued, his eyes searching something in Tom's. "But I have part of
your soul inside me. You gave it to me when I was an infant, and that's why I can speak
Parseltongue. It's not a marriage bond, Tom, that you are sensing; it's a Horcrux. You didn't
intend for that to happen. You wanted to kill me because of a prophecy you'd heard and
thought that the child in that prophecy who'd defeat you is me. In my world, you were not a
twenty-something Minister of Magic; you were a seventy-year-old snake-faced monster who
tore his soul seven times and wanted to annihilate all Muggle-borns. You killed my parents
and tried to kill me. Do you know why I am here? Because your counterpart, Lord
Voldemort, managed to rise to power again and cast the Killing Curse at me once more. Well,
I suppose instead of dying, I just came to this world."
Tom's face was twisted into an expression of greed and horror at the same time. Harry wasn't
lying. Tom couldn't move. Most people hadn't even heard of Horcruxes, and yet, the other
him made seven of them. Incredible! It was insane and at the same time it made Tom's mind
race.
"I didn't want to tell you," Harry cried. "Because there is always the fear that you'll just turn
into that monster that has tried to kill me since I was a child. But I wanted you to know,
Tom... because... because I have decided to stay... stay here with you."
Tom lifted his head and stared at Harry. There were tears in his eyes; he looked so beautiful,
so fragile, so vulnerable. He rushed to hold Harry in his arms and gently squeezed his
shoulders.
"I'll never turn into a monster," he assured Harry, still trying to wrap his head around the
strange inconsistencies. But Harry clearly wasn't trying to deceive him. "Sweetheart, I don't
know who the other me was, but clearly we are not the same person, and you're nothing like
my ex-husband. It's fate that brought you here, to me, away from the monster that a version
of me had become so I can protect you, and you can protect me back."
Harry cried. Tom gently stroked his back, trying to calm him down. His mother couldn't have
been born in 1926 unless... Tom's mind strayed to the events that occurred a couple of weeks
ago. The strange old man that the Muggle referred to as Mr Riddle. The realisation made
Tom pause. Did he time travel to the future as a child? But travel would have left a mark on
his body, and he didn't have any marks left on his that indicated travel through time and
space.
He was the only remaining heir of Salazar Slytherin, and his pretty little husband had a piece
of his soul inside him. Tom could feel it because despite the soul belonging to his
counterpart, it was still his, had the same properties, and that was the reason for the
connection he felt. He didn't need to tear his own soul to create a Horcrux, but he had one—a
beautiful, powerful one—by his side. Harry was more precious than he could ever imagine.
"I like you," Harry said. "I didn't want to stay with you or admit that I like spending time with
you because it made me feel like I was betraying my parents and my friends. All my friends
must be dead now."
"Darling, I am not the person from your world. Do I look like a snake-faced seventy-year-
old?" he asked, his voice coming off amused.
Harry laughed through tears. Tom smiled and brushed the teardrops away with his thumb.
"You think the reason why you are young is because the baby you time-travelled?" Harry
asked. "I've thought about it, and that's the only thing that makes sense."
"It's possible," Tom said gently, holding Harry's hand. "But as I have told you before, travel
through space and time leaves traces on your body, and I have no such mark on mine."
"Well, maybe you haven't looked closely enough," Harry said. "Because—"
"Are you hinting at wanting to see me naked, baby?" Tom teased, making Harry blush.
"No," Harry waved his hands, glaring at Tom. "I am just saying... well, if you travelled as a
baby, you wouldn't even know if anything changed. For one, your eyes are grey here, but in
my world, they were brown—well before you split your soul. After that, they were red."
"I have seen memories of Professor Dumbledore when your counterpart was a student in the
1940s, and your eyes were brown; and now..."
"That could be it," Tom agreed. "You know what that means, darling? It means the universe
couldn't bear us being apart, so it pulled you out of your reality and me out of my time so
we'd meet."
"You're ridiculous," Harry huffed. "I can't believe I ever thought you were anything like
Voldemort."
She hugged Harry and kissed him on the cheeks. Lily Potter was very affectionate with
Harry.
"Tom," Lily turned to him with a smile. "I loved the ball. Everything was amazing."
"Tom," his father-in-law's voice made Tom nearly groan, but he turned around politely to
greet the man. "A word."
"I saw Grindelwald's little spawn here," the man grumbled. "That rascal has always been
sniffing around my son. I don't want him anywhere near Harry."
Tom wanted to roll his eyes, tired of Potter viewing him as his son's babysitter when the brat
was a grown man, although in the current circumstance, as ironic as it was, he was in total
agreement with the older man.
"I have dealt with him," Tom said. "You've nothing to worry about, sir."
"Hmm," the man hummed, narrowing his eyes at Tom for some reason. "You know, I was
watching Harry earlier, and he seems overly affectionate with you. Make sure that silly boy
isn't doing something stupid. It's never a good sign when he smiles and gets too cute. I know
it's a man's first instinct to look at something as perfect and beautiful as him and think he can
do no wrong, but I'd be the first to admit my son is a little demon."
"I understand, sir," Tom smiled, nodding. It was quite hard to understand this man's feelings
towards Harry.
"I am also expecting heirs," he said, taking another sip from his firewhisky. "I hope you
haven't forgotten about it."
Tom wanted to laugh. The way Potter demanded things was almost amusing if the things he
demanded weren't actual flesh-and-blood human beings. Tom had never wanted any children
ruining his life, although he wouldn't mind them with his soulmate now that he knew that
Harry and he were destined by magic to be tied together. Harry, on the other hand, would
murder him if he suggested it. Perhaps he needed to find another way to procure those heirs
for Potter.
"Great," Potter cleared his throat. "We'll have a special meeting at the council tomorrow. I am
planning to announce your appointment as the new head of the council. Once that is done,
you won't have much opposition in the Wizengamot."
"Won't the council oppose my appointment?" Tom asked. Those stuffy purebloods were very
snobby. Even though he had just discovered that he was Slytherin's last remaining heir thanks
to his precious pretty husband.
"No," Potter scoffed. "They can try, of course, but my vote and Sirius's vote will override
anything the others may want to say. That's why I waited until he was back to make sure no
one dared oppose."
He wondered what the man would think if he knew that Tom was Salazar Slytherin's only
blood left in the world. Tom doubted it'd make Potter happy. He was picked because he was a
magically powerful, ambitious and intelligent nobody, ready to do what Potter wanted him to
do and in exchange, Potter gave him his spoiled little princess of a son and his influence and
power.
"Lily misses Harry," Potter said, clearing his throat. "Since we will be busy with the council
tomorrow, I'd prefer if you came and stayed at our house today. Harry could spend tomorrow
with his mother while we sort out your appointment."
Tom would love to say no, but he gritted his teeth and nodded.
Harry felt as if a heavy weight had been lifted off his shoulders now that he had told Tom the
truth. His heart was drumming fast in his chest, vibrating with warmth and excitement. He
had told Tom that he wanted to stay with him. He had confided in him, and Tom had assured
him he would be there for Harry. The guilt he had been feeling since he had come to this new
world had evaporated, vanishing without a trace.
Harry had fought to survive all his life. He didn't have enough food, enough warmth; he
didn't have parents, a home of his own, nor the love and care of others. His first home was
Hogwarts, but even then he kept losing the friends and the family he'd made, and was
continually ignored and ridiculed, constantly lied to. Ron and Hermione were always there
for him, and he would forever miss them. But now, in this new place, he suddenly had Tom,
and he wanted Tom.
"You look happy, baby," his mother said, gently caressing his head. "Something good
happened?"
"Oh please," his mother smiled coyly. "Sweetie, don't be shy. I can tell you and Tom are in a
much better place—the way he looks at you now."
Harry cleared his throat awkwardly. This definitely wasn't a conversation he was willing to
have with his mother. Maybe the other Harry did, but Harry couldn't imagine discussing Tom
with her.
"It's not like that," he said. "We are just very... well, since we are married and all, we are
friends, you know."
Harry shook his head. He was tired, but he wanted to go and sleep. He didn't know why they
had come to his parents' home instead of their own. His mother rubbed his back gently. Harry
felt like a little child in her arms, the feeling of comfort so foreign, yet so addictive.
"Harry," his father's voice startled him. "You look so tired, baby."
Harry lifted his head and saw Tom standing by his father, looking somehow pensive.
"He had to spend several hours on his feet," Tom interjected. "Of course, he's tired. Let's go,
darling. You need to rest."
Harry glared at Tom. There was something very childish and juvenile about this Tom despite
being extremely sophisticated, well-spoken and charming. He seemed to find the most
inappropriate moments to tease him, like right now, in front of his parents.
"Right," Harry grumbled, getting up and kissing his mother on top of her head. "Let's
go, darling, before I drop dead."
Tom's grin only widened, and he extended his hand to Harry. Harry noticed how his father
stared at him confused and what appeared to be a very suspicions look, but he didn't say
anything, just ruffled Harry's hair and wished them good night.
Once they were far enough from his parents, Harry pulled his hand away.
"Mock you?" Tom laughed, grabbing Harry's hand back. "I know that despite that pretty brain
in that head of yours, you still have my ex-husband's body. He would have been whining by
now about his feet hurting and demanding the house-elves to massage them."
"Whatever," Harry rolled his eyes. His feet hurt like they were going to fall off any minute
now. The burning sensation was the worst. His counterpart looked totally bangable but had a
defectively frail body. Harry wasn't sure the beauty compensated for the pain he was feeling
right about then.
Tom suddenly stopped and picked him off the ground. Harry managed to suppress the
undignified scream that was threatening to spill from his mouth.
Tom didn't respond; instead, he pushed the door open and walked inside. Harry, resigned to
his fate, looked around and realised this was the same room they'd stayed in last time. It had
new curtains, bedding, and flowers, all matching in hues and tones.
Tom gently placed Harry on the bed and then proceeded to kneel in front of him and take off
his shoes. Harry closed his eyes. Tom's hands were cool when he cupped his feet, and the
numbing burning ache vanished in the blink of an eye.
"Feel better?" he asked when Harry craned his neck to look at him.
"You really need to teach me that spell," Harry nearly moaned. "How did the other Harry live
like this?"
"I'll make you a potion to help with the pain from now on, darling," he murmured, pushing
back Harry's soft hair.
He stared into Harry's eyes with his lifeless grey eyes, and Harry couldn't help but stare back,
mesmerised. Why the fuck was he so bloody attractive? Harry gulped and blushed brightly.
"Thanks," he said, averting his eyes before he decided to do something stupid and reckless in
true Harry fashion. "I guess I'll go take a bath or something. I wish we were home, to be
honest. Why did you want to stay here today?"
"Your father insisted," Tom said. "Your mother misses you, and he wanted you to spend time
with her since tomorrow we have some important business to conduct."
"So tomorrow I'm stuck here?" Harry groaned. He liked Lily, but she liked spending time
shopping, and Harry hated shopping. "I wanted to continue investigating Harry's death,
especially now that I met his idiot of a lover. Fuck, just remembering that arse raises my
blood pressure. Should have punched him in the face."
"Well, now you're just rubbing it in," he protested. "Hearing that you get to enjoy all these
little things while I don't isn't exactly making me feel all chummy inside, you know. First,
you're telling me I'm stuck home on princess Harry duty and then you tell me you punched
that git. Life isn't fair, is it?"
Tom was laughing, and Harry could tell that it was genuine. The smile and mirth in his eyes
were real.
"Would it please you if I told you Gellert was absolutely floored that you were able to take
him down in a duel and accused me of puppeteering you?"
"Even my accomplishments are being taken from me," Harry lamented, his voice all serious,
but the corners of his lips curled in amusement.
"I see, darling," Tom said, holding his hand. "How can I make you happy then? Would you
like me to draw you a bath and wash you?"
Harry pulled his hand back and nearly fell off the bed. He coughed in embarrassment.
"You're so easy to tease," he laughed, getting up. "I'll draw you a bath, okay?"
He left Harry in the room and disappeared behind the bathroom door. Harry's heart was
beating fast. What was wrong with him? Why was Riddle flirting with him such a big deal?
He rubbed his chest and got up, following Tom to the bathroom. His bare feet touched the
cool marble flooring as he headed inside. Tom held his wand over the tub and was watching
the layer of white steam rise above it.
"Darling?"
Harry looked at Tom, stepped closer, and then put his hands around Tom's neck. Tom stood
there unmoving, watching him and waiting. Harry pulled his head down and went on his
tiptoes to bring their faces together. Riddle was so bloody tall.
Harry swallowed hard, his gaze flitting between Tom's lips and his eyes. Then he tilted his
head and kissed Tom. Softly. Their lips touched lightly, and Tom placed his hands on Harry's
hips and pulled him closer. The scent of magic and cool breeze in springtime enveloped
Harry's senses. Tom had something dark and soothing about his smell.
"I want to stay with you," Harry murmured. "You said I could... before..."
"Are you proposing to me, darling?" Tom whispered into his ear. Harry tried to push him
away. "Sorry, baby, it's just too much fun to tease you since you get worked up so easily."
"I want you to stay here by my side," Tom said, undoing the buttons on Harry's shirt. "I want
you to be my husband, sweetheart. I have never felt a connection to anyone in my life, and
now I know that I was waiting for you. You were meant to come here and be mine."
"Don't exaggerate," Harry huffed, allowing Tom to pull down his shirt. "This is all an
accident. I could have easily wound up in a universe with no Earth or humans."
The shirt fell onto the marble floor. Tom's hands ran down Harry's bare chest, his fingers light
on the lean muscles, perfect silky skin. Harry wasn't sure what they were doing. Tom's hands
slid down, and he undid the fastener on Harry's trousers. They stared at each other. Tom bent
down to pull Harry's trousers down. Harry just stood there frozen.
What were they doing? Was he supposed to undress Tom?
"You're beautiful," Tom said, undressing Harry completely. "But I want to see you, Harry.
The real you, as you were, if you are willing to show me."
"Um," Harry's hands flew to cover himself, but he reasoned Tom had seen it all anyway. He
was married to the other Harry, and there was no way they hadn't fucked. He turned red when
his mind went there, imagining all the filthy things this man must have done and said to the
other Harry. Harry would have fucked himself if he could; with looks so beautiful and sinful,
there was no chance they hadn't.
Just the mere thought made him feel both desire and jealousy. He was jealous of his other
self, and it was pathetic.
"Harry?"
"Yeah? What is it?" he stammered. "You want to see me. You mean what I looked like
before? I mean my body from my world?"
Tom smiled, his hand dipping into the water in the bath, creating small ripples.
"Well, I didn't look like this, that's for sure," he said, feeling self-conscious for some reason.
Would Tom like him? He resembled himself, of course, but Tom's husband was perfect, and
Harry was just Harry.
"Let's get you in the water," Tom said, changing the subject as if sensing Harry's unease. He
stepped forward and picked him up. Harry definitely wasn't expecting such personal
handling. Tom lowered him into the tub, the warm, pleasant water instantly surrounding
Harry from all sides. Tom's hands held him firmly and didn't let go until Harry lay
comfortably, placing his own hands on the sides of the tub.
Tom sat on the edge of the tub and brushed back Harry's hair off his forehead.
Harry was sure Tom could see all the colour changes on his face. He kept imagining things in
his head—filthy, hot things, and it made his breathing shallow, his heart racing, his blood
coursing to places it wasn't meant to go.
"Sure, you can join," he said, trying to scoot away as if the tub wasn't huge, drawing up his
knees towards his chest. "There is enough space for both of us."
Tom smirked and reached out to undo his tie. Harry gulped and averted his eyes.
"You like the water?" he asked, his voice smooth and seductive. "Is it hot enough, baby?"
Harry splashed the water around and nodded, stubbornly avoiding looking at Tom.
"It's good," he said, blinking as he caught the reflection of Tom on the surface of the water.
Startled, he looked away and came face to face with Tom. The man smiled at him, completely
unashamed that he was entirely naked. Harry's eyes widened in shock. He stared, and then,
realising what he was doing, nearly fell on his back into the water. At this rate, he was going
to drown himself from embarrassment.
Tom was so fucking hot; even fully dressed, it wasn't hard to imagine all that impressive
physique the man was hiding beneath a well-tailored suit and robes. But imagining and
seeing it were two different things. And well, other things much more impressive had caught
Harry's eyes, and now his mind was working overtime, providing all kinds of improper
images and conjuring lewd situations. It didn't help that Tom stepped into the tub and lay in
front of him.
Harry gulped and looked at Tom. Tom's lips curled in amusement. It seemed Harry's suffering
was cheering him up. The arse!
"You are flushed," he said. "Do you want me to make the water cooler? Is it too hot, darling?"
Harry glared at him, and that only made Tom's smile wider. The hot arse was definitely
enjoying this. Harry bit his lip and swam towards Tom. The smile dropped from Tom's face
when Harry pressed their wet, bare bodies together.
Tom placed his hand on Harry's back and pulled him closer. He held Harry's chin between his
fingers, tilted it up and leaned down to capture his lips with his own. Closing his eyes, Harry
melted into the kiss, all the thoughts in his head as if disappearing.
"You're too perfect," Tom murmured. "I wish I could see all of you. The you from your
world. You don't need to show me, sweetheart, but I thought now that you've decided to stay,
I'd get to see you—the real you."
Harry gulped. He took a deep breath, still safe in Tom's arms and nodded.
"Okay," he agreed. He owed Tom the truth about himself if he wanted to stay here by Tom's
side. No one else needed to know who Harry was, but Tom deserved to know. "You want me
to give you a memory for a Pensieve?"
"Hmm," Tom brought Harry's hand to his lips and kissed his knuckles. "Pensieve memories
are a good idea. But I don't want to disturb your parents at this hour for a Pensieve. They'd
ask questions."
"You want to see me now?" Harry was a little confused by Tom's enthusiasm. "How else
would you see without a Pensieve?"
"Would you let me into your mind?" Tom asked softly, his hands moving up and tracing the
sides of Harry's face.
It seemed like a bad idea to let Tom into his mind, but it wasn't like Tom was Voldemort.
"I'll lower my Occlumency shields," he told Tom, the warm water splashing slightly as Tom
pushed him towards the other side of the tub and kissed him in response.
Tom found himself in a dark, empty room. The cool, impersonal void sent chills down his
spine. His gaze wandered over the emptiness he was confined in with fascination. He had
never seen a mind as guarded as Harry's. The darkness swam around him, then dissipated like
a wisp of smoke. Tom was in the Great Hall. He saw many students he recognised and some
more he was seeing for the first time in his life.
Tom turned around and saw him. A smile curled the corners of his lips as he took in Harry's
features. He was beautiful. Tom had expected Harry to look vastly different from his spoiled
little husband, but this Harry was breathtaking. He had a scar on his forehead, green eyes
pretty and full of challenge as he sat by his friends' side.
Tom sifted through the memories, watching with fascination as he saw Harry fly on a broom.
The boy was gorgeous. He wished he had attended Hogwarts with this Harry. Tom was a
natural Legilimens, but it was hard even for him to navigate through Harry's mind, despite
the fact that Harry had willingly invited him inside. Tom concentrated and went to Harry's
very first memory.
Harry was a cute, chubby baby. Tom wanted to smile seeing him at this age, but he was
crying. When he looked around, he saw Lily Potter dead by his side. The memories after that
were a blur. Tom watched Harry grow up with strange Muggles. They were disgusting—
perhaps even worse than the impersonal staff at the orphanage Tom had grown up in. These
filthy animals tortured Harry. It was as if he were their personal house-elf, cooking and
cleaning for them, confined in a tiny space like old junk no one knew what to do with and
hadn't bothered to throw away.
Tom would have gladly tortured them if he could have reached through Harry's memories and
interacted with anything there. Years went by, and Harry's Hogwarts letter arrived. Tom
realised how similar that experience was for both of them. Harry too thought of Hogwarts as
his home.
Harry was nothing like his husband had been at school. He cared about others, loved his
friends, and wouldn't stand for Malfoy's snootiness. The memories of Harry and Draco
brought an actual smile to Tom's lips, because Harry definitely handled Malfoy in a way that
Tom often wished he could handle the little git.
Tom's heart slowed down as he met his counterpart. It was horrid. Watching Harry dissolve
the deformed monster's face was surreal. He wasn't sure how to feel about that. But the
following memories of Harry finding the Chamber of Secrets had him mesmerised. Tom
wished he had found it himself. Perhaps he would have, if he had known about his heritage.
Then he saw a version of himself being destroyed by Harry—a Horcrux bound to a mere
diary.
He watched Harry do the craziest things, watched him ride on a hippogriff, be the youngest
champion of Hogwarts, win the Triwizard Championship and kill a Basilisk. He saw himself
resurrected. The other himself was an abomination—hideous and deformed. Voldemort. Tom
hadn't used that name in a very long time. This pathetic little creature had lost his humanity
and intellect to hubris. Hearing a prophecy about himself and knowing there was a man
destined to be his equal, he had decided to destroy him instead of keeping him.
He watched Voldemort with disgust. He had achieved nothing in life; like a pathetic little
coward, he had joined hands with those who had humiliated and insulted him, even though he
had the magic at his fingertips to make them bow before him. Followers? The moron had
followed the purebloods who called him Mudblood in his first years before discovering his
own heritage. That Tom Riddle was pitiful, seeking validation among those who thought he
was of inferior blood.
He watched through all of Harry's memories—all of his pain, all of his fight and suffering.
He watched it all with greed, saw every one of his nightmares, and watched the final moment
of him dying, struck down by the Killing Curse cast by Tom's hideous version.
Tom was pushed out of Harry's mind, and when he came face to face with Harry, there were
tears in his eyes. Tom wiped them away and hugged Harry closer, shielding Harry's head with
his hand. He pressed his lips against Harry's—kissing his lips, his cheeks, his jaw, his
forehead where he remembered the scar from the killing Curse was etched.
"You are magnificent, Harry," he told him. "Even more perfect than I had imagined."
Harry clung to him, and Tom let him. He felt he had the most perfect thing at his side. Tom
held Harry, reassuring him with his touches and caresses.
They lay like that in the tub, relaxing in the warmth of the water, until Harry fell asleep. He
had had a long day and was truly tired. Tom pulled him out of the water, dried his hair with a
quick spell, dressed him in a nightshirt the elf had left for him, and carried him to bed.
Things were certainly going better than he could have ever imagined, and to think that he had
considered, in his Hogwarts years, creating what his monstrous counterpart had done. He
would have had a tragic end. Harry moved to his side, wrapping the blanket around him as if
it were a shield, mumbling something incoherent in his sleep.
"I am on the right path, darling," Tom caressed Harry's face. "Thanks to you, I now know
who I am and what fate I have avoided."
His wand flew to his hand with a wordless Accio, and Tom dried his wet hair and dressed. He
checked the time, then produced a small pin from his pocket.
"I'll be back before you wake up," he whispered, leaning down and placing a kiss on Harry's
cheek.
Activating the special Portkey, Tom left Potter Manor and landed in a quiet street in
Knockturn Alley. He held his wand in front of his face and murmured spells. His face was
obscured with dark magic, concealing his identity. It had been a very long time since he had
called upon the knights. He held his wand up and summoned all of them. The street crackled
with light. The walls from the surrounding buildings extended and enveloped the empty
street, and Tom soon stood in the room alone.
One by one, masked wizards and witches appeared like wisps of smoke and stood before
him. He watched them impassively as they gathered quickly, eager to be called upon after
such a long time of inactivity.
"Good evening, friends," he said, his lips curling into a smirk behind the magical
concealment that no one could see, his voice hoarse and foreign to him. "We meet again."
"Here to serve the cause, Lord Voldemort," they bowed to him in greeting.
Let me know if you liked it. What was your favourite part?
Chapter 12
Chapter Notes
Those of you who like this story and would like to read something similar, an
anonymous author has written a story inspired by Aphelion that you can check, it's
called Lost and Found
Warnings for the chapter: rich people behaviour, exotic animal consumption.
Tom stood before them silently, watching them like a predator stalking its prey. His eyes
swept across the room, waiting for someone to step out of line. They all kept their heads
down, eyeing the wooden floor conjured by magic as if it were a mosaic with mismatched
tiles that required concentration to glimpse its true meaning. The silence stretched, and the
unease grew.
Their faces were hidden, but he could see the uncertainty in the way some of them stood—
their shoulders hunched and arms folded before them like dogs with their tails between their
legs. It had been such a long time since Tom had summoned them. After his wedding, he had
been very busy, and with James Potter's influence at his side, he hadn't had the time or need
to call for a meeting. But things had changed. Now he knew.
"It has come to my attention," he spoke, his voice soft but with a disapproving lilt to his tone,
as he paced through the circle of his knights, peering at them with disapproval, "that in the
last several months, our country has seen quite the notable shift towards Muggle
sympathisers. Especially after the election of Tom Riddle into the post of Minister for
Magic."
He paused before a tall, lanky man whom he could tell was Macnair just by his strange,
rotting, cotton-ball scent. Macnair made a strange glottal sound and tried to straighten his
posture, but Tom placed his hand on the man's shoulder, making him freeze and breathe
loudly through his mouth. His mask, white bone and silver, decorated with protection runes,
tilted strangely, exposing the side of his chin. There was a strange mucous film glistening on
the surface of his skin that was slightly red at the edges, and it looked like Macnair had tried
to scrape it off, but with no luck.
Tom tapped on his shoulder, suppressing a sound of disgust that threatened to escape his lips
and walked over to the next knight. He didn't know who this one was, but whoever it was had
enough sense to step back a little and bow his head in respect.
"And you have, my friends, done nothing about it," Tom chided, turning back and walking
towards the wall that shimmered with the transfiguration charms. "When I have summoned
you in the past and given you my wisdom and my power to realise the dreams of our
ancestors to have this world of ours protected, I had hoped that you would have shown
prudence and willingness for our mission, for our cause, but you've disappointed me with
your lack of action."
"My Lord," someone interrupted him, and when he turned to face them, the coward hesitated
immediately. "We have been waiting for your guidance. We want to serve the cause."
Tom let out a condescending chuckle. He could tell it was Macnair from the potent stench
wafting from his body. He wondered why the man even bothered with the disguise. He
clapped dispassionately, trying to express his displeasure and annoyance in the most
indistinct way. Although, he knew that many gathered here truly lacked subtlety and would
not understand anything less than the obvious.
"So it was none of you who had orchestrated the attack on that sordid orphanage?" he asked,
prowling around them in faint, quiet steps, not making any noise like a wordless
enchantment, waiting to strike.
He watched them. He watched them carefully, his eyes wandering over every single last one
of them, trying to detect the slightest movement—any hint of conspiracy and ploy to hide this
from him or pretend to be at the crux of it. Tom wouldn't put it past these arrogant, snotty
idiots to try and serve multiple masters. If any of them had clasped hands with Gellert,
hoping to achieve their ill-fated dreams of pureblood supremacy, he would need to know and
act accordingly.
A wave of chatter and whispers passed through them, and it seemed none of them stood
behind the attack, which was comforting to know, as Tom didn't wish to compete with Gellert
when it came to navigating his little side project of angry, scorned half-bloods and pure-
bloods who were convinced that they were deprived of certain prestige and rights solely on
the virtue of their blood and heritage.
"The project was proposed and partly financed by James Potter," someone argued
defensively, as if worried they were being accused of inaction in the matter and implying that
a wealthy pureblood's political notions were to be respected.
"I am aware," Tom asserted coldly. "And let me be the first to condemn the irresponsible
attack on that orphanage. Several of our dear brethren were injured, and I can certainly say
that whoever stood behind the attack does not carry the loyalty or love for our country and
our world. My sources even confirm that some of those caught and involved in this attack
were filthy beasts like werewolves."
The Knights exchanged looks with one another, nodding in agreement even though some of
them were still confused about the implication behind Tom's words.
"Those who employ these creatures to spill magical blood, no matter how impure, are not to
be celebrated," he declared. "I was, of course, trusting that those within our ranks are of
exceptional judgement and wouldn't have fallen prey to such folly, but at the same time, I am
afraid to say that there are forces at work among us that are trying to destroy everything we
hold sacred, and they've managed to infiltrate every facet of our government and our
institutions. I implore you to remain vigilant and careful when conducting yourselves under
the decree and in the name of our cause."
"Yes, My Lord," they chanted in unison, their voices stitching themselves to one another and
echoing in the emptiness of the magic-forged room.
Tom had to suppress a laugh of amusement at how docile and obedient these self-important
pricks were being. If only they knew who Lord Voldemort was, if only they knew who stood
behind the mask of their leader, they would perhaps lose their collective minds—not that
there was much to lose, as most of them were ignorant, pea-brained morons.
There was a hum of agreement, making Tom roll his eyes behind his mask at how dedicated
these scoundrels were to hating him. It was amusing.
"We have not worked so hard to allow for some Mudblood to come and commandeer our
money, our wealth, and expropriate these precious resources for his ill-judged political
endeavours, while also getting all the credit and patting himself on the back," Tom continued,
his voice grave and steely, waving his arms around as if outraged at the audacity of what was
happening at the Ministry. "We simply cannot take Mudblood children and house them, feed
them, and raise them with our money—all of this effort on our Galleons; all the while their
Muggle parents to be free of them with a simple Obliviate Charm and go on their merry way?
I don't think so."
"Well said, My Lord," someone shouted. "They want us to finance Muggles breeding like
animals and then go scot-free while we pay for their magic-thieving spawns."
Tom chuckled. He was never surprised at the level of delusion these people engaged in. It
was almost too easy.
"What would you like us to do, My Lord?" another asked as the chatter grew louder.
"I know you and I are not opposed to the children of our brethren who lose their parents due
to tragic circumstances being cared for and supported until they become members of our
society. I know we all agree that we need a home for them, so the orphanage should be
supported," he said, eyeing them intently, wondering if they even had any thoughts of their
own about whether they needed an orphanage or just liked the idea of being wise and
benevolent amongst themselves. Tom knew that it was important to stroke their egos to
achieve anything he wanted. These scoundrels liked to believe that they were special.
"Exactly my thought, My Lord!" someone hummed, nodding his head intensely enough that
the mask nearly fell off.
"Great to hear that our values are not compromised," Tom proclaimed. A buzz of approval
followed, but Tom stopped them, raising his hand and shaking his head. "But the same cannot
be said for the completely imprudent agenda that Minister Riddle is trying to push. We will
not pay for the Mudblood children, and while they should be introduced to the Magical world
at an earlier age to avoid all these problems of integration, their Muggle parents should pay
for it."
"Completely in agreement," Macnair mumbled, his voice barely leaving his throat. "But they
want to obliviate the Muggles before taking the brats from them."
"I don't think we should create more responsibility for us," someone huffed. "Why should we
pay for these children when they have their Muggle parents alive? They should pay us for
providing the Muggle orphanage schooling."
They started going back and forth, agreeing and disagreeing with each other, and Tom
listened to them, lips pressed together and jaw set tightly, wondering if they realised that they
were having major issues with lack of wizarding population growth. The magical economy
was operating at such a tiny scale because of low numbers, and each year, those numbers
were shrinking; it was all due to the Muggle-born children that the positions that needed to be
manned could be occupied.
While these idiots were just busy with bluster and pathos and weren't really ready to
understand that Muggles could very well one day annihilate them if they felt inclined to do
so, wizarding numbers were growing smaller and smaller.
"Gentlemen," he interjected. "Please, let us not get sidetracked. What is important here is that
we need to pressure Minister Riddle to modify the law regarding the orphanage and have it so
that Muggles will not be obliviated and would need to pay fees for their children's early
magical education. I want you to work tirelessly to make sure that this is up for discussion at
the next Wizengamot session and an amendment is made to the bill."
"Ready to serve you and the Sacred Cause, Lord Voldemort," they chanted.
The magic shimmered in the air, floating and binding the vow given, and Tom simply
watched them impassively. They were always a means to an end, and now that end was to
make Harry happy. If his little, pretty husband couldn't be happy with Tom yanking away
some Muggle-born children from their parents, Tom couldn't simply let it happen, just
because his father-in-law wished so.
"Before you go," Tom spoke, walking up to where Macnair was standing, ready to apparate
away.
The man shifted nervously. They all knew his power and were wary of him despite their
loyalty to him. Tom found it funny that they showed him reverence and respect because they
didn't know his blood status. Perhaps they'd be more inclined if they knew that he was the
only remaining heir of Salazar Slytherin. The others paused too, watching Macnair curiously.
Tom held his unarmed hand over Macnair's face, right above his chin, where the rot was
spreading from, and murmured spells that none of these bastards knew—spells of his own
creation mixed with magic that hadn't been used in a thousand years. Ashy dust, dark and
inky, poured out of Macnair's skin and burst apart in the air. Tom easily vanished it with a
flick of his hand.
Macnair stood for a second astonished, then brought his hand to his chin, his meaty fingers
moving underneath his magical mask and feeling his healed skin.
"My Lord," he cried, falling to his knees. "Thank you for your mercy, for your gift."
"I would advise you to be more careful venturing into dark magic," Tom said with contempt.
"I would not tolerate my followers making such mistakes, but of course, my gifts are for
those loyal to me, like you."
Macnair nearly kissed his feet, and Tom had to step away to avoid that misfortune. The rest
seemed in awe and quite stunned to realise what he had just done. Tom merely wanted to
reinforce the understanding that there would be upsides for service to him. These self-serving
wretches didn't operate in any different manner.
He waved his hands, prompting them to leave, and as wisps of smoke that they came, the
wisps of smoke they left. Tom stood in the room, waiting until only two masked men were
left behind. The moment they were alone, their masks faded away, and Tom could see the
faces of Barty Crouch Jr and Peter Pettigrew. Only the two knew of his real identity and face.
Barty had known from the start, and Pettigrew had found out by accident. Tom had to keep
the rat on a short leash because he knew that Pettigrew couldn't be trusted.
"Sir, My Lord," Barty cleared his throat, rushing to him as Tom dissipated his own mask and
the cloak shrouding his face and body. "It has been a while since you've called us. I am a little
surprised by your standing order. Is it wise to have them go against you at the Ministry?"
"Oh, Barty," Tom smiled. "They will not go against me; they will do exactly what I want
them to do. As you're aware, Harry is upset with the notion of us separating children from
their Muggle parents, and as you also are aware, I cannot do anything about it, as my hands
are tied and my father-in-law wouldn't have me go against him. I just need a little push and
pull, and things will go as they are meant to go."
"Are you not worried that they might cause problems for you in the future, sir?" he asked. "It
seems you're setting them up against yourself."
"Am I?" Tom laughed. "You know, Barty, in politics it's always important to have allies, but
what is also important is to have an opposition—at least, the appearance of it. When you only
seem to have supporters and very strong, powerful allies, people start to mistrust you.
Powerful people only look out for themselves, and if they are supporting you, it means you're
doing something for them. People operate on dualities: good and bad, strong and weak; and if
you are with the strong and powerful, then you're not on the side of those who do not
consider themselves strong and powerful."
Peter shifted about, dragging the sharp ends of his ridiculous shoes across the floor,
distracting Tom. Tom glared at the man, making him freeze.
"...So, it's always important to have opposition. Lord Voldemort is a powerful wizard who
opposes the Minister. And as long as Lord Voldemort opposes him, these people can rally
around Lord Voldemort and not need to form their secondary and tertiary clubs and circles.
Power always requires subtlety. No one likes the idea of someone other than themselves
having too much power. If people can think that Minister Riddle is kept in check, then they
won't worry about me."
"I understand, sir," Barty gulped. "It is still very hard for me to hear you speak in such a
manner about yourself, I mean Minister Riddle."
He laughed awkwardly.
"And I appreciate your loyalty, Barty," Tom smiled; this time his smile was genuine. "But
you don't need to worry about my pride. A man who walks with his nose up will trip.
Sometimes it's good to keep your head down, or you won't notice any traps on the way to
your throne. Hubris is dangerous. I have come to learn that."
"Of course, sir," Barty nodded. "And I shall keep this all to myself."
"Thank you, Barty," Tom said and then turned to Pettigrew. "And Peter, I do hope you
understand the gravity of betraying me and accidentally spilling anything that is being
discussed outside our official meetings."
Pettigrew's face became crimson, and he bobbed his head ardently. Tom had repaired
Pettigrew's missing hand, and Peter knew that the gift came with strings attached.
Harry was so cosy. A soothing warmth enveloped him. When he stretched his legs, the silky
soft sheets brushed against his skin, and he curled his body into the comforting warmth of the
blankets wrapped around him. His foot then glided over the bedding, and he stuck it out of
the blanket only for a second, feeling the cool press of the bedcovers that were not heated in
the cocoon of his blanket.
He opened his eyes for a short moment; the bright light had managed to creep inside through
the threads and delicate needlework of the curtains. He closed his eyes again and pulled the
covers to his face, sinking into the plush pillows. Harry's sleep-addled mind registered a
comforting hand wrapped around his waist, holding him tightly in place. His eyelids
fluttered, and he wondered, at the back of his mind, how he got to the bed yesterday. He
remembered bathing in the tub, and then there was nothing.
Harry turned around, trying to settle back into the bedding and go to sleep, but came face to
face with Tom. His cool eyes peered into Harry's as his lips curled into a smile.
"Good morning, darling," he drawled in a soft tone, his arm possessively pulling Harry taut
against him. "Did you sleep well?"
Harry felt Tom's hard length press against him and gulped, his cheeks turning rosy and sleep
evaporating from his eyes. He covered his face with his palms. Tom laughed and gently
stroked Harry's hair.
"Shut up," Harry shook his head, rubbing his heated cheeks. "You are just too warm. You're
making me sweat."
"Am I now?" Tom smirked, brushing back Harry's soft hair off his face. He brought his hands
and placed them on top of Harry's, murmuring a cooling spell. "Feel better?"
Harry froze, looking into Tom's eyes and realising the gentle way the man was looking at
him. Harry had confessed all of his secrets to Tom, and Tom had seen the real him. Tom had
seen the real him and told him that he liked Harry very much. A grin broke on Harry's face,
and his heart thrummed in his chest, skipping a beat. Warmth spread in his stomach, and
Harry felt like the air wasn't enough for his lungs.
Tom was looking at him, and he was smiling. Fuck! Harry couldn't look at Tom and not feel
out of his bloody mind.
"Erm..." he cleared his throat, shuffling about in the bed, trying to get up. "I'll go and take a
quick shower."
"Alright, darling," Tom said, moving forward and wrapping his arm around Harry's back
while sliding the other under Harry's legs. "Let me take you to the bathroom."
He picked Harry up with ease as if Harry weighed less than a quill, less than a pocket watch,
and walked towards the door on the side of the bedroom. His eyes remained focused on
Harry, and the admiring smile didn't leave his lips.
"You are mine now, sweetheart," Tom told him. "You said you wanted to stay with me, and I
suppose, even though we are married, I'd like you to date me."
"Date you?" Harry licked his lips, unable to look away. Tom was so bloody handsome. His
hair was still perfect despite having just woken up. He looked so composed and collected
even though he'd just opened his eyes.
"Yes," Tom said. "Go on dates with me. I hadn't dated my ex-husband, but you... you I would
like to take out on dates and court properly. So today, after I'm done with the commitment I
have to attend with your father, I'd like to take you out somewhere. I'm sure you'd enjoy it."
Harry's heart swelled. Tom lowered him to his feet and leaned down to place a kiss on his
forehead. It was so chaste and light as if Tom was scared he'd frighten Harry. Harry didn't
know there was much in his life that could frighten him anymore.
He hadn't gone on any dates at all, so the idea that Tom wanted to take him on a date excited
him strangely. Fuck, he felt stupid and embarrassed that spending time with this man made
him feel childlike wonder and joy.
"You want to go to Hogsmeade, Harry?" Tom laughed. "I was thinking a bit more Muggle.
My ex-husband wouldn't have indulged, but I am confident that you will like it. But I will
take you to Hogsmeade. Although that might raise some eyebrows. I imagine the papers
would love it."
"Is Hogsmeade too childish for a date?" Harry laughed awkwardly. "I guess I just want what I
didn't have. My classmates would go on dates in Hogsmeade. My only attempt ended in a bit
of a disaster, to be honest."
His own admission and reminder of that awful date with Cho made his cheeks burn.
"It's not childish," Tom argued. "We will go to every date spot in Hogsmeade. I will get you
ice-cream, and we can have tea. If you want, we can shop for funny hats at Fickle Fabrics and
those garish socks from Gladrags; we can do that too. Everything that crosses your mind."
Harry covered his heated cheeks in shame. Fuck, it sounded so juvenile, and he wanted it all.
"Okay," he agreed. "And I want the Muggle dates with you too."
"Of course, darling," Tom said with a smile, making Harry feel like his heart was trying to
spring out of his chest and fly away.
After everything yesterday, Harry now knew that he had made the right choice. Tom was
nothing like Voldemort. He was a different man. Harry felt safe for the first time in a very
long time. Tom had been very subtle and careful about how he had treated Harry and had
never pressured him into revealing things. Come to think of it, he didn't really think of
Voldemort as himself when he had learned the truth.
"I am surprised you have taken everything about Voldemort and all so easily," Harry said,
changing the topic. "I thought you'd be more upset about the whole insanity thing."
Tom smiled. "Are you upset about what the other you was?" he asked.
"I am nothing but pragmatic," Tom replied, bringing Harry's hand to his lips and kissing his
knuckles. "Besides, all the space and time travel has made sure we are in the same timespan. I
imagine a romance with a seventy-year-old wouldn't have been as exciting."
"Oh, sweetheart, I didn't know you had inherited vanity from my ex-husband," Tom joked,
feeling no shame or remorse in teasing Harry, in fact, Harry was certain the arse was
completely pleased with himself.
A smile curled the corners of Harry's lips, and he went up on his tiptoes, placing a barely
touching kiss on Tom's lips and forcing the man to hold him possessively. The smile didn't
leave Tom's face, and he looked so much more handsome like this. Harry liked it.
"You know, Harry," he murmured, "now I know why you've been wary of me. And I am sorry
that the other me was so horrible. I know, even though I am not him, I will still do things that
you won't agree with, especially politically. There will be times I will have to do things that
you do not approve of, but I promise you that I will do my best to make things as good as I
can."
"Thank you, Tom," Harry felt his eyes water, and he widened them in the hope that the tears
would just spread across and not spill over. He didn't want Tom to see him crying, but his
voice cracked anyway, giving away how he felt.
"I know you are very unhappy about the Muggle-born children being taken away from their
parents and the parents being obliviated," he told Harry, his voice soft and low. "I may be
able to stop that from happening. I can't change everything, but the things that I can, I will
fight to change."
Harry hugged Tom, his hands wrapping around him tightly. They stood there like that in the
elegant bathroom of the Potter Manor, in each other's arms for a moment. Tom eventually
pulled away, patting Harry's head as if Harry was a tiny kitten.
"Alright, take your shower, darling," he said. "Or we will be late for breakfast with your
parents. Unfortunately, I have a council meeting scheduled with your father and will need to
leave soon."
"You're going to leave me behind? Is that how it is?" Harry groaned, reaching out and turning
the hot water on.
"You will survive a few hours without me," Tom joked. "And I will make it up to you."
Harry snorted and, pulling off his shirt, stepped under the hot water. He closed his eyes,
enjoying the way the hot water caressed his skin, and when he opened them, Tom was no
longer there. He probably went to the other bathroom to shower and get ready. Harry
mechanically reached for the soothing, sweet-smelling bath creams and ointments. He had
already gotten used to doing this to maintain the other Harry's looks, so it was already a habit
at this point.
The other Harry's body was so slender and lithe, like a meticulously curved marble statue.
Harry couldn't understand how Tom would consider his original looks just as beautiful when
Harry himself would have totally fucked this new version of himself if he could. He lathered
the cream over his skin, feeling the silky texture beneath his fingertips, the water slowly
gliding over him and washing away the soap.
He was still a little tired from yesterday and had slept so well after having the weight of his
secrets lifted off his shoulders that he would have liked to stay in bed with Tom a bit longer.
Quickly washing his hair and body, he exited the shower and cast a few drying charms on
himself. He turned to grab his clothes left in the bathroom from yesterday, but they were no
longer there. Instead, a new set of clothes, carefully pressed and folded, had been left for him.
Harry put them on and walked back into the bedroom. Tom was already dressed. He looked
so good in his well-pressed suit and dark robes with the snake-shaped tie bar. The moment he
saw Harry, his expression lightened.
"Let's go," he said, coming up to Harry and placing his hand on Harry's waist.
They walked out of the bedroom, and Harry leaned into Tom's touch, wondering internally
how his parents would react to the change in their relationship. He felt bad about replacing
the other Harry, but realised there was nothing he could do about it, as he could do nothing
about his original world where he himself was dead.
"Baby," Lily Potter's voice pulled him back from his thoughts, and Harry looked up to see his
mother, with her pretty red hair down, wearing a white silk blouse and a long pleated skirt.
She looked so beautiful without any glamour or make-up. "You are up so early. You're never
up so early."
She came over and hugged him, and Tom stepped back to allow Lily to wrap her arms around
her son.
"I just..." Harry stammered. "Tom said we would be having breakfast with you, and I wanted
to have tea with all of you."
"Aww," she laughed, her little giggles so sweet that Harry couldn't help the smile on his lips.
"Come sit here, sweetie! With all the crazy things happening, we really haven't had much
time to spend with each other, have we? But today, we have all to ourselves. We can shop for
some pretty outfits for you. Madam Malkin has so many new pieces, and Cissy will come
with us too."
Harry sat down on the plush sofa by his mother's side and glanced at Tom, resignation to his
fate all over his face. Tom smirked. The bloody arsehole! Harry didn't want to spend a whole
day shopping for new clothes. He was distracted by an elf popping in and bringing them tea
that he didn't notice his father walking in.
"Does master want tea?" the elf asked, and James dismissively waved his hand.
"Don't put too much cream, Winky," he ordered as he sat down next to Tom, facing Harry.
"Harry, baby, why aren't you having breakfast? Are you dieting again?"
Harry shifted with discomfort, unsure what to say. Truth was, he wasn't very hungry and just
wanted tea.
"James," Lily furrowed her eyebrows, laughing softly and tossing back her long pretty curls.
"He's having tea."
"Tea isn't enough to stay healthy," he rolled his eyes. "He's meant to have children and needs
to eat properly."
Harry nearly snorted his tea and almost threw up. He coughed, startled, and Lily rushed to
rub his back in a soothing pattern. What was this man's deal? Why was he bloody monitoring
Harry's eating habits and demanding children?
"He's eating quite healthily, sir," Tom stated, tilting his head to look at James. His voice and
demeanour were courteous, but Harry could tell from his stiff posture that he was annoyed.
"And his regular healer checkups always confirm that. Harry is just not a morning person."
"Right," James nodded, staring at Harry. "You are awake a little too early for yourself, baby. I
hope you are not up to some mischief again, are you?"
Harry cleared his throat and shook his head. James Potter was treating his son like he was a
little child. Harry was meant to be an adult, a married man with a husband and his own life,
and yet James was looking at Harry like a misbehaving, spoiled princess that needed to be
scolded and patted on the head simultaneously.
"The gala yesterday was amazing," Lily laughed, as if sensing Harry's unease and deciding to
reverse the conversation to something else. "Tom, the work you've put in is truly
extraordinary."
"Thank you, Lady Potter," Tom said politely, placing his teacup back into its saucer.
"Yes," James agreed. "It was great. We do have important work today though. Your
appointment as the head of the Council will be the first step in our plan to start the change
that is long overdue. The Ministry's inactivity has resulted in the current disastrous state of
affairs for us, and we simply cannot allow for that to happen."
ㅤ
They landed before large silver gates, decorated and warded with ancient runes and magic.
Tom had been a member of the council since his marriage to Harry, and Potter had been
tactically pushing his prominence in the council's decision-making roles. The other members
treated him with contempt, as he was neither a pureblood nor did he hail from a well-known
wizarding family; however, Tom, being the Minister and James Potter's son-in-law, had
effectively silenced them.
The gates opened for them, and they stepped into a dark, narrow room. As they strode down
the long corridor, lanterns attached to the walls lit up one by one, illuminating their path. The
council's chambers were several feet below ground, and Tom always found it strangely
comforting. They stepped into the lift, and before the doors could close, Sirius Black hopped
in.
"Sirius," James greeted him with a handshake and hugged him. "Glad you are back home.
How was your trip?"
"Annoying as always," Black snorted. "You know how my mother can be."
"Is she not getting better?" James asked, not sounding too interested in the answer, and it
seemed Black knew it, because he laughed.
"Fuck no!" he huffed. "If she did, she'd try to ruin my life, so let's hope that tragedy never
happens. She was cross with me for dating Remus. Can you imagine the fit she'd throw if she
knew I am now married to him?"
Potter nodded.
"Riddle," Black turned to him tersely. "I see you're being promoted today. Congratulations!"
The man seemingly couldn't stand him. Tom never understood where this hostility came
from. He had never done anything to earn Black's discontent. But he assumed it was because
of his marriage to the man's godson. Sirius Black worshipped Harry and thought the little brat
was the best thing that walked the earth, and, in his opinion, Tom didn't deserve him.
"Good morning, Mr Black," Tom greeted politely. "Thank you. I wouldn't have been here
without your support."
"How is Harry?"
"That brat, as always, is causing trouble," James laughed. "You know how unruly he is.
Although I feel he's been a bit quiet recently. Tom must have his hands full with that one."
"Harry is a sweet boy," Black argued. "I've brought him presents from France. Maybe we can
see him later today."
Perhaps Black should have gotten a child of his own instead of spoiling Potter's brat.
Although now Tom was curious how he'd react to Harry not caring one bit for the gifts he'd
brought.
The lift reached the ground floor, and they stepped out and headed to the council's chambers.
The members were already seated; some of them looked so bored and uninterested that Tom
wondered why they even attended. Black took his seat; meanwhile, Potter sat next to him and
motioned for Tom to sit next to him. He glanced over the gathered men and noticed Macnair,
sitting all proud and happy in a new set of robes. He must have gone shopping after
yesterday's meeting, happy for his healed face.
A few pleasantries were exchanged, and then the council's session commenced.
"Gentlemen, honourable members of the council, as you are aware after Mr James
Blishwick's unexpected passing, the position of head of the Sacred Council has been vacant,"
James announced, standing up and commanding the attention of the attendees at the council
meeting seated at the table. "Today we are gathered here to remedy this matter and vote for
the new head of the council. I offer Tom Riddle's candidacy for this position."
"Your son-in-law, Potter?" Selwyn snorted. "I haven't seen a more blatant attempt at a power
grab."
There was a slight noise as some of the council members shuffled on their chairs in clear
discomfort. Potter, along with Black, was a major financial contributor to the council's
treasury, and many here had a vested interest in keeping the man happy. No one wished to
ruffle Potter's feathers and engage in a fight with him they couldn't possibly win.
"And I am sure you can express your opinion with your vote, Selwyn," Potter smiled, leaning
forward and locking eyes with Selwyn.
Tom could tell that Potter was annoyed, as the smile lingered on his lips, almost like an
unspoken threat.
"With my vote?" Selwyn shouted, unable to control himself. "You are speaking about my
vote when you're shamelessly trying to push your influence into every institution we have."
He looked around, indignant and angry as if searching for allies amongst the members, and
some of them seemed to have been emboldened by his outburst because they nodded and
hummed in agreement. Things were getting tense. Tom found it frustratingly annoying that he
had to leave Harry's side for this nonsense.
"Yes, with your vote," Potter mocked. "I was operating under the assumption that everyone
here, Selwyn, knows how the council functions. To elect a new head of the council, a
candidacy of a member should be proposed, and the said candidacy should be put up for a
vote. If you are unaware of our bylaws, I suggest you spend your afternoon getting yourself
acquainted with them. That is, of course, if you hope to remain a member of this council."
"This is outrageous," Selwyn screamed, his face getting red as he got to his feet. "The
purpose of the council is to regulate the Ministerial affairs, and now you're trying to nominate
your son-in-law as the head of the organisation that is supposed to keep him in check while
he's the Minister for Magic."
"Funny," Potter placed his hand on the table and tilted his head to the side. "I was certain that
the purpose of this council was its independent review and work from the Ministry to
establish new projects and realise them, not oversee the Ministry of Magic or the Minister's
decisions. The council is established to carry out the realisation of projects that are essential
to the British wizarding communities but are not on the radar or under the management of the
Ministry."
Potter's tone, calm and assertive, was dripping with condescension. The man was always
patronising, but it seemed Selwyn was receiving special treatment. Tom knew Potter quite
well, and he knew that the man wasn't just bark with no bite.
"And you think that your son-in-law is best suited for this position?"
"You keep repeating that word, son-in-law, Selwyn, as if that somehow undermines Mr
Riddle's accomplishments," James snorted, placing his hand on Tom's shoulder. "I am sure
everyone at some point has wondered, and perhaps even hoped, that they or one of their
children would enter into such a relationship with me. So it should be telling of the level of
competence Mr Riddle has to not only be the current Minister at his age, but also to be
chosen to marry my son."
There was a hum of agreement. Tom couldn't deny that Potter's defence of him was quite
strange but not unwelcome. He knew the man saw him as a means to an end, but Potter
certainly was not one to be stingy with the men he used. Tom had gotten Potter's biggest
prize, his son, who was now an utter perfection with the right soul inhabiting that body, one
that no one could deny was made for sin.
"This council is meant to advance our interests, and it is in our interest to reform and better
our institutions," Potter continued, his voice taking on a slightly calmer and more measured
tone. "No Minister or council member has achieved the level of progress that Mr Riddle has
managed. The Magical Children's Integration Act, the Education Reform Act, which I would
insist has done more to produce qualified wizards and witches at their profession than any
other educational programme, not to mention the trade agreements we are enjoying now that
have been achieved through the hard work of... my son-in-law."
"Unless that is exactly what makes you so upset, Selwyn," Potter added, amused. "The very
notion that you'd need to work or pay attention to this council's sessions. I am beginning to
believe you were using your time at the council as a means to avoid your wife."
"How dare you, Potter," Selwyn bristled. "And now you are throwing personal insults."
"You were the first to bring personal matters into this," Potter countered. "I would advise you
to sit down and show some decorum. Everyone who's displeased can offer their own
candidacy or the candidacy of another of their choice, and we shall put it to a vote."
"Perhaps Mr Selwyn no longer enjoys the council," Malfoy sneered, crossing his legs. "The
membership, I reckon, is not mandatory."
"Hmm, Malfoy, I don't need your commentary on this," Selwyn shot back. "Everyone here
knows that you, Potter and Black are related by blood and marriage."
"Everyone here is unfortunately related," Black laughed. "An aunt of mine is married to an
uncle of yours, so cut the shit."
"Mr Potter, Mr Black," Macnair inserted himself into the conversation. "We may vote in Mr
Riddle's favour, but the old magic would need to sanctify his appointment, and we are well
aware of his blood. I do not wish to sound crass, but the fire will not burn strong. The magic
will not accept someone who isn't of old blood."
Tom gritted his teeth. Macnair seemed awfully sure of himself after nearly rotting to death
and getting a second chance due to Tom. Although the idiot didn't know, and his current
abrasiveness was perhaps inspired by his belief that his Lord Voldemort would protect him
against Potter and the others present here, which was quite amusing in hindsight.
"Those in favour of Mr Riddle being elected as the new head of the council, please cast your
votes now with a show of hands," Malfoy said, while keenly observing his manicured nails
and then raising his arm.
Most members of the council raised their hands, save for Selwyn, Macnair and a few others.
Potter watched the show of hands and then a smirk curled his lips.
"Mr Riddle is the new head of the council," he declared, getting up and clapping. The others
followed suit. The only ones that remained seated were those that had voted against him.
"The ancient magic still needs to accept him, Potter," Selwyn sneered. "I think you are
celebrating a bit too soon."
"Of course," Potter smirked and walked up to the pedestal facing the large wall that had been
hand-carved, depicting a large ancient creature. He grabbed the silver dagger displayed on the
pedestal and walked back to his seat.
He extended the dagger to Tom, and Tom took it. Tom walked up to the wall, held his palm
over it, murmured the charms to awaken the creature carved into it, and then made a small cut
into his hand, holding it over the wall. Blood dripped down into the basin at the foot of it, and
everyone watched with bated breath, waiting to see if the fire would burn bright or if the
magic wouldn't accept his blood.
The blood dripped, drop after another, and some of the seated members who had voted
against him suddenly seemed very giddy as if vindicated, but then suddenly the creature lit
up, lapping at Tom's blood, and fire burst out, nearly scorching everyone in its path. Tom
turned around to look at the stunned faces of the council members; even those who had voted
for him were shocked. Only James Potter didn't seem surprised at all. He smirked and turned
to look at others with a gloating expression.
"It seems ancient magic was quite eager for this appointment," Potter taunted. "Some of you
are—"
The door to the chambers swung open, and a man rushed in.
"Sir," he said. "I am sorry to interrupt. But we need to inform the Minister about a Dementor
attack in Hogsmeade."
Lily fixed Harry's hair, brushing it to the side, her fingers gently touching his face. Harry
smiled at her, and Lily smiled back.
"Well, sweetie," she said, excited, crossing her legs. "Tell me how it's going with Tom. I have
seen you looking at him. Don't deny it."
Harry's cheeks turned red. No, absolutely not! He was not going to discuss Tom with his
mother. She had tried to pry yesterday too, and he had brushed her off, but his mother seemed
awfully persistent.
"We are fine," he said, coughing and shifting in discomfort. Lily didn't seem to notice,
though.
"That's for the better, baby," she said. "We can't afford another scandal right now. Things are
very complicated, and your father is trying to make important changes."
"Important changes?" Harry asked, raising an eyebrow. James Potter seemed strangely
interested in politics for a man who wasn't exactly involved with any political office.
His mother smiled and nodded, without explaining what she meant.
"Let's go, Harry," she said, holding his hand. "Narcissa is probably already waiting for us."
Harry held her hand, and they apparated into the street right before Madam Malkin's shop.
The sun was beautifully bright. It was always nice in Hogsmeade. Harry loved this place, and
he wished he had more opportunities to enjoy it. They walked down the cobblestone pathway,
the buildings perched at odd angles with their façades adorned with colourful window
displays. There were so many places he wanted to go, and a part of him excitedly told him
that he could go with Tom.
Harry inhaled happily and glanced at his mother. Lily Potter was a beautiful woman and
looked just as young as Harry remembered her. She seemed carefree and a little too detached
from everything. Harry's heart swelled with longing every time he was with her, and every
time he felt a little bit of bitterness inside that, despite the resemblance, this was not his
mother.
There were shoppers passing by, browsing the windows, Hogwarts students holding hands,
and most of them were staring at him. It was strange that so many people would be interested
in him when Harry hadn't really done anything to earn this kind of notice. There were a few
photographers snapping pictures of him with his mother.
"Narcissa," Lily waved at the woman walking towards them from the other end of the street.
"Lily, so good to see you," Narcissa Malfoy said, hugging and kissing Lily. "Finally, some
time for ourselves. Oh, Harry, look at you. You were so beautiful yesterday. We didn't get to
greet each other. The Minister had you all to himself; Lily and I noticed that, my stunning
boy."
Harry was going to vomit if he had to hear any more of this nonsense. His lips twisted into a
reluctant smile. Narcissa leaned forward and hugged him gently, kissing his cheek and
smiling at him. She seemed so tender with him, and while the whole cooing voice she used
was a bit patronising, it was nice to be treated so lovingly.
"He's being coy about it," Lily laughed. "Keeping secrets from me! Can you imagine?"
Narcissa laughed, and they headed inside Madam Malkin's shop, dragging Harry with them.
"Mr Potter-Riddle," someone yelled, making Harry look back and snapped a picture of him.
"These vultures," Lily shook her head and sighed. "They just won't leave us alone."
The door shut behind them, and they found themselves amidst the lively activity of Madam
Malkin's shop. Lily patted him on the back and guided him towards the collection of ties set
in a special section of the shop. The place smelled like sweet pea—floral, sugary, like orange
blossoms and roses.
"I like the red ones," she muttered, grabbing a tie with little golden stripes. "Maybe I should
get this for your father."
Harry nodded, not really caring. The day was going to be very, very long. He wished he could
do something more fun than stare at ties. He could have spent his time investigating the other
Harry's death. He hadn't had any new clues thus far, and there were so many tapes he still
needed to review. At this point, he wondered if the other Harry simply hadn't died from
alcohol poisoning.
"Harry, baby, come here," Lily said, and Harry realised that his mother had walked away
without him noticing. "Look at this! It's so pretty."
Harry stared, confused, at the strange piece of lace fabric, all dark green with golden chains
and gems, and wondered if it was a strange scarf. He grabbed it to take a look at it, and when
he realised what it was, he dropped it like it was made of fire.
"Harry," Lily chided. "You don't like it? It's so pretty and would look so good on you. I bet
Tom would love it too."
Yes! NO! He wasn't going to wear that, not even alone, but especially not in Tom's presence.
"I'm good," he said, waving his arms around, staring at what appeared to be a scandalous
piece of undergarment. His mind raced.
"Harry, you're having sex with Tom, aren't you?" his mother asked incredulously, and Harry
almost fell on his arse from shock. "Don't tell me you're depriving the man."
His cheeks turned hot, he reached out and grabbed the flimsy fabric and shoved it into a small
basket sitting on the accessory table and then grabbed a bunch of scarves and dumped them
on top to cover up the sinfully lacy underwear that no one in their right mind would ever
wear.
"Harry!" she called after him as Harry rushed through the shop, grabbing whatever shiny
thing his eyes caught and trying to bury the sensual piece of fabric that he regrettably
imagined himself wearing, and having Tom pull it off him. He imagined Tom's heated eyes
and the cold, assertive way he'd look him up and down. "Baby, wait!"
"I'll get it," he said. "See, it's right here. Let's just not talk about this stuff, okay?"
"What are you up to, Harry?" she asked, laughing. "Are you hiding something from me?"
"Um," Harry lifted his hands defensively, as if pleading for a ceasefire. He wondered if the
other Harry actually discussed these things with his mother, and now the lack of gossip had
worried her. "I'm fine, really, Mum. Just have been very busy with things. You know, the
whole orphanage attack... erm... well, they don't know who is responsible for that, so I was
kind of helping Tom with that."
"What?" Lily laughed. "Sweetie, leave that to the experts. You don't need to waste your time
like that trying to get Tom's attention. There is no man who can reject you. Just be honest
with him if you have changed your mind about him."
Harry wasn't really looking into the orphanage case; he was investigating his own murder,
sort of, but it annoyed him that his mother thought Harry couldn't actually be valuable at a
job like that and was doing it to get Tom's attention. As if! Riddle wished.
"Your mother is right, sweetheart," Narcissa Malfoy chimed in, holding a strange necklace
that looked like it was itching to choke someone to death. "Leave all that work to trained
Aurors. Draco will take care of it. You don't need to worry about those criminals anymore."
Right! They were blessed that Draco Malfoy was taking care of it. What would they do
without him?
There was no use arguing with them. It wasn't like they needed to change their minds for
Harry to do what he wanted. The only person who could be a real hurdle to Harry going to
the Ministry and investigating things was Tom, and Tom knew who Harry was and liked him
for it. Harry's heart did a little jump in his chest, making him bring his hand and place it on
his heart instinctively. It was crazy how much he was thinking about Tom. Harry needed to
get himself together.
The shopping continued for a while, and judging by Madam Malkin's pleased face after both
Lily and Narcissa left the store, they had spent a lot of money buying, Merlin knows, how
many things. Harry held the bags and boxes of clothes, wondering what he'd need to do with
them.
They both giggled and walked down the street, but Harry froze mid-step. A cold wave passed
through his spine, petrifying him. When he exhaled, the wisp of air leaving his mouth turned
into a cloud, a vapour that had been frozen by a cold wind. Harry looked around and felt like
all the joy he had ever felt suddenly left his mind.
"Harry?" his mother's voice startled him. "Are you okay, sweetheart?"
The glass on the display windows of the nearby shops covered with fern frost. Harry knew
what this was. He had felt it before, but this time it was much stronger. It was as if there were
hundreds of Dementors nearby.
"Harry?"
The sky darkened, and the ground dimmed, the silhouettes of their shadows spreading across
like a plague, like rot. People in the street looked up, horrified when they realised that the
entire area was surrounded by a soul-sucking army of Dementors, and they were rapidly
descending down. Harry felt his mother's hand on his arm. She pulled him and started
running towards the shop.
Dementors reached the ground and attacked. There was panic and terrified screams, people
rushing in and out of the buildings. Dementors were everywhere. Harry had never in his life
seen as many as there were now in Hogsmeade.
A swarm of them flew towards him, and Harry, finally coming to his senses, pulled out his
wand to send them all away. His mother pulled him back and stood in front of him, trying to
shield him from the Dementors. Harry was so stunned that for a moment he didn't even move
as she cast a Patronus of her own. The thin layer of magic didn't deter the dark creatures at
all.
He could hear others shouting out the only spell that was meant to protect them against
Dementors, only for it to be too weak to hold them back.
The Dementor was so close to him now, all the light extinguished. It tried to latch onto his
mother, who was trying to protect him, but Harry pulled her away and pointed his wand at it.
A silver stream of light shot from his wand, spreading forth. The light became intense and
bright, sweeping away the Dementors. He faintly heard his mother's scream as she thought he
was going to be killed by the creature, and the sound of her fall to the pebbled ground. It was
strange that despite being so naive and almost airheaded, she really did care about Harry.
Before he could turn back and check on her, a silver stag leapt into the army of Dementors,
chasing them away. Harry held his wand, trying to maintain the spell and push as many of
them back as he could until the Aurors showed up. There were too many of them, and it
seemed most of the people in Hogsmeade couldn't cast a proper Patronus.
His eyes fell to where his mother was. She was still on the ground, terrified, staring at him in
stunned silence as Narcissa Malfoy tried to help her to her feet. She was too confused by the
sight of the stag mauling away the Dementors. Harry felt relieved that she was fine and
turned his attention back to the creatures.
He felt warmth spreading in his veins, and then his wand produced a silver stag after stag as
they jumped out and rushed to fight the Dementors. It was strange. He could feel the wand in
his hand burning, cracking. It seemed it was too weak to be able to channel this kind of
magic. It was too much, even for Harry.
Harry realised that his magic was merging with that of the other Harry. The strange heritage
he possessed had a kind of magic that was overwhelmingly powerful. The wand he had
couldn't handle it. Harry felt like it was burning him from the inside, too. No wonder the
other Harry couldn't use his magic. This magic was too strong; it was impossibly intense, and
Harry could barely control it. He had the advantage of having an extra soul attached to his
own. He was stronger than most wizards.
His Patronuses were everywhere. They were so bright that the light no longer looked silver;
now it was white. His wand felt like coal in his palm, hot and scorching, and the magic was
wild like a storm. The Patronuses grabbed the Dementors, lifting them into the air and
binding them in bright light. People on the ground were no longer screaming or running
away. They were staring. In awe. Stunned. Horrified. Relieved.
The entire expanse of the sky was scattered with bright, tiny stars as all the Dementors were
shrouded and obscured by the magic of the Patronus. They had wrapped around the dark
creatures like spheres. The air crackled with the sounds of the Aurors apparating into the
street.
"Harry, baby, are you okay?" his mother cried. "How did you even..."
"I am fine," he hurried to assure her. Despite everything, Lily Potter still loved her son. "Are
you okay? Did you hurt yourself falling?"
She wiped her tears and shook her head. Harry nodded at her and didn't lower his wand,
watching the lights in the sky, worried that they would dissipate, and the Dementors would
attack again. Normally, Dementors ran away from a Patronus, but this time, they seemed
imprisoned by his magic, and Harry wasn't even sure if that was a good thing. Because he
wanted all of these creatures away in Azkaban or wherever.
"Harry?" he heard his father's voice as the man came into focus. "What are you..."
He stared at the light streaming from Harry's wand right into the sky, keeping all the
Dementors bound by magic. There was a strange expression on his face, a mixture of
disbelief, worry, and amazement.
"Oh, Merlin," someone cried. "He has saved us all. So much magic to do it."
There were photos being snapped quickly, and Harry was losing his concentration. The wand
burned his hand as it turned to ash, and Harry yelped, dropping it.
"Harry!" It was Tom rushing to him, with Sirius following closely behind. Harry's eyes flitted
between the two, not knowing whom to look at. He had missed Sirius so much, and this man
looked exactly like him but harry was also so happy to see Tom.
Tom was the first to reach him. He grabbed Harry's hand and murmured a quick spell. The
burnt line left by the wand healed away without a trace.
"Are you okay, darling?" he asked as if looking for any marks left from his fight against the
Dementors. "Your wand has burned. No wonder! How in the world could you channel this
magic? A corporeal Patronus—no, not just one, not even two. A whole herd of them. No one
has seen such a thing in my lifetime."
The photos kept being snapped as Tom held Harry in his arms, and Harry saw all the people
around them staring at him. The Aurors seemed confused and didn't know what to do with
the hundreds of Dementors lost in spheres of light floating above them.
"I'm fine, Tom," Harry murmured, allowing himself to be wrapped in Tom's arms. "I didn't
intend these many Patronuses, to be honest. Just one, and one is really not a big deal, but I
guess one wouldn't have solved this issue."
"You are perfect, Harry," Tom whispered into his ear. "Every time I am certain you cannot be
more perfect, you prove me wrong."
"Oh, give it a rest," Harry shook his head. "Just don't ask me to undo the magic, because I
have no idea how to do it. I think it has something to do with the whole Lurne thing. My
magic normally is not this crazy."
Tom kissed the top of his head, and if the Patronus light hadn't almost blinded Harry, the
journalists trying to take pictures of him would have. Tom released his hold and stepped back
to look at the lights, and Harry realised that they were slowly dimming. His wand was gone,
and he didn't know if the Aurors would be able to take hold of these creatures after what had
just happened.
Harry's eyes fell to where his father was helping his mother and Narcissa, and then he saw
Sirius standing there with him.
The lights dimmed, and people stared up, completely confused—the only thing left behind
were hundreds of naked men and women floating in the air. There were no Dementors. Not a
single one.
"Circe, save us!" someone cried. "Those are the Dementors. The Lurne has made them turn
back into humans!"
Harry wrinkled his face. What the fuck was he talking about?
Tom grabbed the paper placed on his desk by Barty and, scanning over the article, incinerated
it with a flick of his fingers.
The papers wouldn't shut up about Harry. Everyone wrote about the Hogsmeade incident.
The international wizarding news was all over it too. Many had arrived in the past few weeks,
and Tom had to deal not only with the local idiots but also reporters from all over the world.
They kept demanding an audience with Harry.
The International Confederation of Wizards kept sending summons to have Harry appear
before its High Court, arguing that the existence of a wizard of such calibre should not be
taken lightly and that his gifts belonged to the wizarding kind collectively, not just to Britain.
Harry had to stay home, away from public scrutiny, as the attention was getting out of
control. The public had never seen anything like this. People were curious, and Tom couldn't
even blame them. Harry's magic and control of it were magnificent. It seemed, though, that as
many were in awe of him, just as many were equally terrified that there was a wizard as
powerful as he.
"Things will calm down, sir," Barty said, awkwardly clearing his throat. "They are just
amazed by what happened. It's not every day that a wizard casts a Patronus. A corporeal one.
We are receiving letters from various places requesting Harry's help for healing, and many
believe he can fix—"
"We need to actively stop this from spreading and getting out of control," Tom sighed,
leaning back in his chair. "These people are out of their bloody minds."
"Of course, sir," Barty nodded. "How about the ICW? They keep sending summons. Should
we schedule a meeting with them?"
"No," Tom shook his head. "Grindelwald is, of course, trying to get his dirty paws on Harry,
using his father's position at the ICW. Use diplomatic pressure to have them back off. We will
suspend our cooperation with them if they continue to harass a private party like Harry."
Tom would need to kill all these nonsensical stories about Harry belonging to everyone
before it stirred a mob of idiots.
"Also, Barty," Tom called, stopping the man before he could exit his office, "gather
intelligence on these journalists and their publications. If they want a story, let's give them
one—tell our own story about their misdeeds, plaster it across our channels, and challenge
their narratives."
"Precisely!" Tom said coldly. "We'll turn their scrutiny into a spectacle—a chance to rally
national pride. And should they cross a line, we may find a way to remind them of the
consequences of antagonising our state. If they want to create a mob, we will be the first to
let them know what happens when one forms."
"Understood, My Lord. I'll ensure our narrative dominates," Barty said, slightly bending his
head in acknowledgement. "Do we need to add extra security for Harry?"
"Harry is safe at home," Tom replied, leaning back in his seat. "He's not in any danger, but I
am confident that if anyone tries anything, my little husband knows how to handle himself."
Harry hadn't just produced a powerful Patronus; his Patronus was so strong that it had
cleansed all the Dementors of the dark magic, pain, and suffering they were imbued with.
There were several accounts that all the Dementors were human once but had turned into the
soul-sucking creatures they were known as after years of torture in Azkaban. But knowing
the story about Azkaban and the Dementors was one thing, and seeing them turn human was
completely different.
Tom knew that no amount of redirecting the press would stop people from talking about what
Harry had done. He had "cured" the Dementors. These tortured witches and wizards had
turned into happiness-sucking monsters as all of their own happiness and soul had been
corrupted, torn and taken away from them. Harry had done the impossible.
"Should we do any press releases on the newly cured?" Barty asked, his voice hesitant and
unsure.
"We must consider the optics of the situation first. I will need a complete briefing on their
current state before I can even entertain the notion of making such an announcement," Tom
said, closing his eyes. "Based on the last report, they are still in shock, and most of them
haven't even spoken. The last thing we need is to fan the flames of panic."
"I will call for a briefing in the afternoon," Barty said. "After the amendment to the Muggle-
born integration act is voted on in the scheduled Wizengamot session."
Tom's plan had worked, and his "opposition" had "pressured" him to make changes to the act
and ensure the Muggle parents were involved and were paying for their children's pre-
Hogwarts education and care. Tom would just need to sell it to James Potter as another
victory for them since the man would now be able to use his money to finance some of these
children's education and have them be grateful to him in the future after they entered into the
wizarding world's politics and workforce as adults.
There was a knock on the door that interrupted Tom's musings. It must have been Miss
Granger. Tom lifted his face, and his pupils instantly dilated as he stared at Harry. He was so
bloody pretty. A smile curled his lips.
"What are you doing here, darling?" he asked, hastily getting up from his seat and walking up
to Harry. The smell of snowdrops reached his nose as soon as he hugged Harry.
"Mmm," Harry's body went pliant, allowing Tom to hold him in his arms like the pretty little
thing that he was. Tom smiled at him, unable to hold back his affection.
"Sorry," Harry muttered softly. "I was really bored. I was thinking maybe you'd need my help
with something or I can work on Harry's case?"
"You know very well that we have postponed all investigation until the situation calms
down," Tom said, holding Harry's hand and peppering it with kisses. "You have shocked
everyone by turning a horde of Dementors into people. Even your father was stunned."
"Good," Harry laughed. "I can't just live like an incompetent idiot my whole life."
"I suppose I should hire you as the new warden of Azkaban, baby," Tom joked. "You have
left the prison without any employees by removing century-old dark magic."
Harry laughed. "I can't tell if you sound proud or annoyed," he said.
"Can't I be a bit of both?" he asked, amused, guiding Harry towards the sofa in the corner,
sitting down and pulling Harry into his lap. "You're a dream come true, Harry."
"A dream you leave at home so you can come here and have all the fun," Harry argued.
"All the fun?" Tom chuckled. "What kind of fun do you imagine I am having here without
you? Just give me a bit of time, and I will make all of this go away, and you should be able to
come and go as you please."
"Have you looked into why the Dementors were in Hogsmeade in the first place?" Harry
asked, pulling himself down to curl by Tom's side on the sofa.
"It's under investigation," Tom said.
"Merlin," Harry rolled his eyes. "Would you let me investigate it myself? It doesn't seem
Malfoy knows what he's doing."
"I have someone else looking into it and the orphanage attack separately," Tom told him.
Harry sighed and leaned towards Tom. Tom gently stroked his hair.
"I am sorry, darling," he apologised. "I promised we would go on dates and then couldn't
keep my promise because of the incident and have been very busy here at the Ministry with
work that I can barely see you. Please forgive me."
"You are so nothing like Voldemort," he smiled. "Merlin, now that you know, I can just freely
say it. It's so odd for me how normal you are, and every time I look at you, I just can't help
but think what Voldie would think if he saw you. He probably would be both jealous and
dismissive."
Tom smiled. He needed to find a proper excuse to stop Harry from ever using that name in
case someone who was a knight of his heard.
"Are you complimenting me, sweetheart?" Tom raised an eyebrow, amused. "Or are you
having a laugh at my expense?"
"It's more of a compliment, I think," Harry said, excited. "It's surreal. I am glad, Tom, you are
nothing like him."
"Baby," Tom said softly and leaned to whisper into Harry's ear. "I am beginning to feel
jealous that you keep saying his name. So perhaps call him the monster?"
Harry leaned back, looked at him a bit dazed, and then burst out laughing. Tom stared at him
incredulously.
"I think you called him a noseless bastard before," Tom said, coaxing Harry back into his
arms. "That's a perfect name. Go with that one."
"You are ridiculous," Harry laughed, trying to escape Tom's embrace. "I will go get us snacks
from the cafeteria."
"Are you sure?" Tom asked, sounding worried. "I don't want you to deal with all kinds of
nosy fools."
"Don't worry," Harry said, getting up. "I will show them my claws."
"Do you have your wand?"
"Yes," Harry pulled out the new wand Tom had gotten him temporarily until they could go
for a real wand shopping. Clearly, Harry needed a wand that could handle his magic.
"Be careful," Tom warned him as Harry headed for the door. "Don't make me come up there
to wring necks."
He was so pretty. If Tom could handle it before, now it was his sheer force of will and years
of perfected composure that prevented him from doing something completely inappropriate.
Harry gave him his pretty smile and closed the door behind him. Tom would go mad until he
got rid of all these idiots stirring up controversy and noise about Harry and demanding Harry
to be shown to the public.
He heard Harry talking with someone. His voice sounded cheerful, and Tom wondered if it
was his secretary, but then the door opened, and Weasley walked inside.
Tom nodded and motioned for him to sit as he headed towards his desk.
"Do you have any new findings for me, Mr Weasley?" he asked, sitting down.
Weasley looked uncomfortable. He shifted in the chair and rearranged the stacks of paper he
had brought with him that must have been the written briefing. It seemed a lot of pages.
"Sir," he said politely, clearing his throat. "I am afraid there really is a leak in the Ministry.
Someone is working against... I... I have thoroughly investigated to be sure, but it seems
every single one of our Auror reports has been leaked and all our directives have been
changed both during the orphanage attack and recently with the Dementor attack. Someone
from the Ministry has keyed in and made the Dementor order and also redirected the Aurors
both times."
Weasley gulped. Tom furrowed an eyebrow, wondering who it could possibly be that he was
so skittish and hesitant.
"Sir, the entry identification key both times belonged to Mr Malfoy," he said.
"Draco Malfoy?" Tom clarified, and Weasley nodded, placing the reports and the evidence on
his desk. "Are you sure?"
Tom closed his eyes, covering his face with the palm of his hand.
ㅤ
"You look beautiful," Tom said, admiring Harry from head to toe as the stunning man walked
into the drawing room.
Harry tugged at the flower pins attached to his hair and sighed.
"Isn't this a little too much?" he asked awkwardly, waving his delicate hands over his head.
"Dobby insisted, but I feel like a self-appointed flower girl at someone's wedding."
"Well, then you're a very pretty flower girl," Tom teased, raising his hand and motioning for
Harry to come closer. "Don't worry, darling. You look good. People expect you to look like
this, all dolled up and beautiful. You can take them off after the press take the pictures. I
promise there are only approved journalists there."
Harry rolled his eyes, as if it were no big deal how perfect he was. Tom couldn't help but
stare. He was so beautiful. The well-fitted trousers elegantly emphasised his slender legs,
while the pale baby green satin dress shirt made him look as if he were wrapped in magic. He
walked up to Tom, and Tom placed his hand on Harry's back.
The past few weeks had been a struggle. Tom was busy with the orphanage project,
overseeing the financial side of it for James Potter, dealing with the press, and managing the
incessant demands from various wizarding communities wanting to see Harry. A dam had
been opened, and controlling everything all at once was a colossal effort.
"Hopefully, I won't have to stupefy anyone," Harry joked, reaching out to check the wand in
the pretty wand holster. Tom had never seen one adorned with precious gems like that. It
must have been something Lily Potter had bought, because Harry didn't seem to care
anymore about fashion.
"Things have calmed down," Tom assured him. "There will be a lot of guests. Your parents
usually host Midsumor festivities at their Highlands residence, and many people are invited,
but no one who wants to be invited again will bother you, darling."
"I have never been to one of these," Harry explained. "I didn't grow up in the wizarding
world, and my Muggle guardians didn't really let me out of the house."
"It's just a celebration, like Yule, except the Malfoys usually host Yule, and your parents host
Midsumor," Tom said softly. "You will love it. There's lots of food, drinks and dancing. And
if you want, we can make the fire when night falls."
"I am a politician at heart, after all," Tom said, holding Harry's hand as they headed for the
fireplace. Harry tensed up a little. This was going to be a big appearance after the Hogsmeade
incident, and people definitely had shown they couldn't be trusted to be polite. "You will be
fine, darling. No one is going to ask you about your Patronus."
"How are the Dementor... patients?" Harry asked, clearing his throat.
"Traumatised, recovering," Tom said. "They do remember most of what happened to them,
and unfortunately, it isn't pleasant. But the healers are working with them, helping them."
"I feel guilty that I've caused all their suffering," Harry explained as they entered the
fireplace. "They would have been better off never becoming human, knowing all that
happened to them."
"Harry, I assure you that they most certainly wouldn't have preferred that," Tom told him.
"People don't want their identity or sense of self taken from them, no matter how hard it is to
be that person. Even if they suffer now, at least they are themselves, and the suffering is not
forever. All bad things end. You didn't intentionally do this to them, but you have given them
a chance to live as themselves."
"Thank you, Tom," Harry smiled at him, leaning into him as Tom poured the Floo Powder on
them, and they transported to the Potter residence.
Harry stared around with wonder. Even though Potter Manor was grand and beautiful, this
place in the Highlands was almost as big as Hogwarts and much older than Hogwarts. It was
grim inside, possibly why Lily Potter had refused to live there, but it did serve as the place
they usually hosted Midsumor celebrations.
The large hall with high ceilings, where they found themselves, had beautiful paintings
covering the walls, large lamps hanging everywhere with fire burning brightly in them
despite it being daytime, and the old furniture looked far more inviting with flowers in vases
on every possible surface.
There were people inside, but Tom knew that most of the guests were outside in the Potter
gardens, where tables were usually set, and food and drinks were served. James Potter often
invited bards for the occasion to sing the songs of old days, even though most of the guests
were not exactly keen on it. They would gush about it just so they wouldn't appear
uncultured, but Tom knew that most of them didn't truly care for tradition, despite their
wealth and the talk of upholding traditions they usually peddled.
"This way," Tom said, guiding Harry towards the large glass-domed sunroom, filled with
lilies and roses in precious gem-encrusted vases and pots. There were garlands of summer
flowers and birch adorning the walls and doors, with glass lamps hanging and magical fire
burning inside them. They walked through groups of guests, all eating and drinking, chatting,
and laughing. Some were dancing and looked very happy.
The photographers waved at them, and Tom pulled Harry towards the wall adorned with
summer flowers and posed for photos. Tom looked down at Harry, whose cute face was
scrunched up in annoyance as he tried his best to smile, and Tom chuckled. Harry looked up,
their eyes met, and the flash of the camera light became almost blinding.
"Harry!" Sirius Black's cheerful voice boomed, and seeing him, Harry ran up to the man.
It seemed Harry really loved his godfather. The man leaned down and hugged Harry, lifting
him off his feet and twirling him around in the air as if he were a child. Tom's ex-husband
liked Sirius because the man spoiled him. While James Potter indulged his son's every whim,
he was at times quite strict with him, and Sirius Black had no such qualms. So if Daddy
wouldn't do something, the brat would run off to Black, batting his eyelashes and asking his
godfather for help. It always worked.
"We haven't had the chance to see each other properly for the last few months," the man said,
ruffling Harry's hair and then awkwardly trying to fix the hairpins he'd displaced. Harry didn't
care, and Sirius seemed a bit surprised as he patted his head apologetically. Tom smirked,
watching them. The other Harry would have thrown a fit by now about his perfectly styled
hair being ruined.
"How are you doing, Sirius?" Harry said earnestly. "I am so glad you're here."
"I am much better now that I see you," the man smiled. "I've brought you so many presents
from France. I haven't had the chance to visit or send them to you yet, but I know you'll like
them."
"I'm sure I will," Harry nodded. "If you have the time, you should come and visit."
"Remus has missed you too," Black said, smiling. "We will come for your birthday. It's in a
few weeks, isn't it?"
Harry nodded, and the man patted his shoulder this time, deciding not to risk it and make
Harry's hair worse.
"Good to see you, Mr Black," Tom said, approaching and extending his hand for a
handshake.
Black shook his hand with some reluctance and then looked back at Harry.
"I will still see you," he said. "Let me go greet your mother and father. Lily has thrown such a
great party as always."
Tom leaned down, pulled the pins from Harry's hair and gently brushed the strands to the
side, kissing Harry's head.
"Thank you," Harry smiled, as Tom placed the pins into Harry's pocket.
"Do you want something sweet?" Tom asked, placing his palm on the back of Harry's neck
and possessively pulling him back tightly against himself.
He had no idea why people, even Harry's family, touching him was getting under his skin.
Tom had never felt like this about another person. But Harry wasn't just another person, so he
understood that he couldn't let his claim on him go unnoticed. People needed to know and see
that Harry belonged to him, and he didn't share.
"Maybe something to drink," Harry said, looking around and seeing Weasley. "Ginny?"
The redhead turned around abruptly, pulling her startled date, who looked to be Longbottom,
along with her. She waved at Harry happily, rushing towards them and dragging the poor
bastard with her.
"Harry," she exclaimed, letting go of her date's arm and hugging Harry. "I love your clothes.
You look so good."
"You are beautiful, Ginny," Harry said, looking at her fondly. "Oh, is that you, Neville?"
"Oh, good to see you, Mr Potter-Riddle, and you, Minister," Longbottom said politely,
adjusting the glass in his hand as he spoke.
Harry looked at him with a hint of sadness in his eyes, as if he were upset that Longbottom
was so formal with him and then turned to smile at Weasley again. "Good to see you both,"
he said.
"Were you dating Longbottom, sweetheart?" Tom asked once both Weasley and Longbottom
were away greeting the others and mingling. He hated the idea of Harry dating his political
rival in any reality. "In your world, I mean."
"Neville?" Harry burst out laughing. "That's funny. No, Tom. I wasn't dating Neville. We
were friends, I'd say pretty good friends over the years. But you know, I was actually dating
Ginny."
He gave Tom a coy smile and walked up to the tables beneath the large flower-woven canopy
to grab a drink. Tom stared at his retreating back in shock and rushed after him. He hadn't
even considered that.
The music flowed freely. People danced, and after a few glasses of firewhisky, Harry seemed
amenable to the idea of dancing too. They danced. Tom had never liked the summer solstice,
as he always had to return to stay at the orphanage during summers, and as an adult, he felt
out of place at these events. But it somehow felt different this time. It felt like all these people
didn't matter; only Harry did.
And everything was perfect until Tom spotted Gellert Grindelwald among the guests. Tom
hated him as much as his little brat of a son, especially because he knew Grindelwald Sr was
the dangerous one, fueling his son's political ambition. He pulled Harry closer as they
danced, watching the man take a sip from his drink and watch everyone with a smug
expression on his face.
"Mr Grindelwald," James Potter greeted him politely. "I wasn't expecting to see you here
today."
Grindelwald's smug smile widened as he turned to Potter. "I hope my visit is not
unwelcome," he said. "I must say it's quite the celebration. Litha has always been one of my
favourite summer festivals."
"We're happy for all our guests," Potter said, raising his glass in a toast and then taking a sip.
"And certainly hope you're enjoying yourself."
Grindelwald responded in kind and then turned his attention to couples dancing.
"Oh, to be young again," he laughed, motioning at the people dancing. "Harry seems happy. I
was afraid the news of him recovering his energy after the Dementor incident wasn't
exaggerated. But I can see he's quite well."
"You seem awfully invested in my son's health," he said, tilting his head as he watched
Grindelwald. "Let me worry about that."
"Oh, James," Grindelwald laughed, placing his hand on the other man's shoulder and giving a
friendly pat. "I wasn't implying anything. Simply, being happy for him. You know that my
son is fond of Harry. Shame you didn't let them be together. And now, we find out how
powerful he is. All that power in the wrong hands can be disastrous, and the ICW is
concerned. I am sure you understand."
"Everyone has always been aware of Harry's heritage," he said curtly. "I don't see why the
ICW is concerned now all of a sudden. Surely, you're not suggesting I should hand over my
son to you, because the poor boy was so scared for his mother's life that he cured all those
Dementors out of necessity."
"Hardly," Grindelwald shook his head. "I wouldn't suggest such a thing. But others at the
ICW do not share my beliefs. A wizard of Alluran blood who was able to do what Harry did
belongs to everyone—not Britain, not the Potter family, and certainly not to the current
Minister for Magic."
"Belongs?" Potter snorted. "It's sad that people operate under the delusion that they are owed
something. I suppose they will be disappointed to learn that they have no say in my family
matters and certainly no say in my son's life."
"Hmm," Grindelwald smirked, pretending to contemplate something. "This could have been
avoided, James, if you had considered your son's marriage prospects with more prudence.
You could have selected anyone. You were well aware of my son's affection for Harry, and in
a situation like this, I am sure I would have been able to reassure the ICW members that
Harry presents no threat to anyone or any nation had you allowed them to marry. But you
decided to pick a nameless boy and then shoved him into every place you could with your
influence. People are talking, and some think Riddle must be a son of yours."
This seemed to enrage Potter. His hands clenched into fists, and Tom wondered how the glass
in his hand hadn't shattered yet.
"Unlike some, Gellert," Potter hissed, "I do not have children out of wedlock and certainly do
not cheat on my wife. That would be crass. I am sure many cannot comprehend the notion of
upholding our traditions and not running around laying with Merlin knows who. I also do not
share the sentiments of marrying my son to family, because if I did, I'd have another child
with my own wife for that purpose."
The smile dropped from Grindelwald's face. Potter's jab was obvious.
"Good luck, Mr Potter," Grindelwald said through gritted teeth. "This was lovely. I am afraid
I have some other commitments today. I would have loved to stay longer. Please do keep me
in mind if you need help with the ICW."
"Thank you, Gellert," Potter replied, his voice smooth but laced with an icy undertone. "I'll
be sure to remember your generous offer."
Potter downed the entire contents of his glass as soon as Grindelwald left, looking furious
and ready to murder someone. Tom rarely enjoyed doing things for Potter, but he knew that
he would gladly kill Grindelwald if the man asked him to now.
He pulled Harry tightly against him, wondering what he'd need to do to make the intense
feeling of wanting to keep Harry all to himself go away before it drove him mad.
"Good," Tom said. "Let them see how much I adore you. Please kiss me, Harry."
Harry's face heated up. He went up on his toes, wrapped his arms around Tom's neck, and
Tom pulled him up with ease. Harry could easily levitate himself, but Tom took every chance
to touch him. Harry's sweet, cool scent filled his nostrils and his body instantly relaxed as
Harry kissed him right in front of everyone—his friends, his parents, people from the papers.
Soon, the night fell, and the guests climbed to the top of the hill to light woodfires and
bonefires. Tom dropped his jacket over Harry's shoulders. Harry refused to admit he was
cold, but Tom knew how fragile his husband's body was.
"Do your feet ache?" he asked softly into Harry's ear as they walked side by side.
"I am fine," Harry said, and Tom knew he was trying to minimise the pain he was feeling.
"I can carry you, sweetheart," Tom offered. "Don't be stubborn, let me carry you."
"If it gets too bad, I will tell you," Harry compromised and then added with humour. "I still
can't believe that the noseless bastard's counterpart is a pretty good husband."
"I am pleased to surprise," Tom laughed. "Let's go, you'll like the fire."
Harry did like the fire. His magic lit it up, and the smoke danced in the air. They sat together,
and Tom held him in his arms. The stars above were bright and beautiful, and the moonlight
shimmered like silver on the fresh grass. Tom felt content. The hole inside him that
demanded to be filled was suddenly silent, no longer screaming and yelling at him to move,
to act, to become more powerful, better. It was mellow and content, almost happy.
When they returned to the castle, the guests began leaving bit by bit. Harry was already tired,
and Tom knew that despite the brave face he had put on, his feet were probably killing him,
and he needed to lie down and rest. It seemed he didn't like telling people about his pain or
discomfort and preferred to bear it silently.
"We will go home soon," he told Harry, holding him to prevent him from tripping.
"Your ex's body sucks," Harry complained. "I think I saw a sofa in the drawing room."
Tom leaned down, placed his arms under Harry's legs, and picked him up with ease. Harry
yelped but wrapped his arms around Tom's neck.
"Taking you to the drawing room to the sofa so you can rest until this night is wrapped up,
darling."
"Shut up, Harry," Tom said fondly. "I can see you're barely awake and standing on your feet.
It's okay to ask for help and admit when you are exhausted. I won't judge you."
Tom walked into the drawing room, ignoring all the stares, and lowered Harry onto the sofa.
He sat next to him, held his hand, and murmured a few spells, hoping it would alleviate the
pain.
Harry opened his mouth to respond, but the Floo system activating made him pause. Tom
craned his neck to see who decided to visit the Potters at this hour after the celebrations were
almost over. When the wizards appeared in the fireplace, he narrowed his eyes, recognising a
few faces there. They were from the ICW.
"We are here for Harry James Potter-Riddle," one of the men said, holding up a parchment
paper that had the official ICW summons written on it.
Grindelwald's ego clearly was wounded today. Harry stared, confused and a little startled,
trying to get up, but Tom motioned for him to remain seated.
He got up, walked up to the man, and grabbed the parchment paper. He scanned through the
document as the ICW representatives stood in James Potter's drawing room, staring
awkwardly at the lavish decorations.
"What is going on here?" James Potter asked, walking inside with his wife. It seemed they
had bid their goodbyes as the last guests left and were ready to retire for the evening.
"We are here on official business, Mr Potter," the man who seemed to be the head of this little
delegation said. "The ICW needs Harry Potter-Riddle's presence for an official hearing to
determine the potential threat posed by a wizard of his strength being solely under the
governance of the British Ministry of Magic."
"Spielman, Erik Spielman," the man hurried to introduce himself, awkwardly looking at
Potter.
"Perfect," Potter pointed at the door in the far corner of the room. "This way, Mr Spielman."
Tom folded the parchment and followed them into Potter's study. Spielman looked very
confused by this development. He must have never been in a place like this in his life. Potter
had expensive taste and the money to show for it.
"Please sit down, Mr Spielman," Potter said politely, his eyes scanning over Spielman's
tattered coat. "You seem like a nice lad, quite young, the Head of Incarceration at the
International Wizarding Police?"
Spielman nodded. Potter grabbed a bottle of wine and pulled glasses from the ornate wooden
cabinet, then walked back to his desk.
"Any relation to the Spielman family?" he asked, pouring wine into the glasses.
"No, my parents are both Muggle-borns," Spielman said, reaching out to accept the glass
from Potter.
"Quite the accomplishment then," he said, sitting in his leather chair and crossing his legs. "I
am sure a hardworking nice lad like you has better things to do today than be here. Perhaps
spend the evening with a lovely witch… or a wizard. I suppose this job you have is keeping
you very busy and not paying you enough to have a family."
"Like I said, Mr Potter," Spielman stated, playing with his glass, "this is an official business
visit, and we need your cooperation."
"Mr Spielman, I am afraid you do not quite understand," he said. "No one takes my son from
my home for any reason. Perhaps, if I feel very mean-spited, I might send him with you, but
your superiors would then need to beg me to come and pick him up. He can be very difficult,
and I doubt you are prepared to handle that."
Tom wondered if Potter was making a joke about what kind of little brat his son could be.
Spielman took a sip from his wine and stared at Tom, wondering if he could simply leave
without needing to listen to what James Potter had to say.
"With all due respect," he said, swiping his teeth over his lower lip, "but I am obligated to
perform my—"
Potter raised his hand dismissively and shushed him.
"I must say, your tenacity is commendable, Erik," he said, his voice losing its friendliness.
"But do you really think dragging my son into this is wise?"
Spielman steadied himself, glanced at Tom again as if asking for help and gulped.
"With all due respect, Mr Potter, this is a matter of public interest. It's not just about your son.
There are serious implications at stake here."
"Oh, I admire your spirit. But let's not pretend you're immune from the repercussions of your
actions if you decide to insult me like this," Potter sounded cold now; he looked at Spielman,
feigning contemplation. "Now, here's a thought: I could arrange for a substantial grant for
you, something to really make a difference. Something that could buy you a proper suit and
perhaps even the wine you are enjoying now. All I ask in return is that you go back and end
this frivolous pursuit of my son."
"Sir, my integrity..."
"Integrity?" Potter laughed, leaning closer. "Integrity won't shield you from those who don't
share your ideals. I wouldn't want anything… unfortunate to happen to your career or your
reputation, dear boy, but institutions like the ICW can be quite fickle towards half-bloods
with no connections."
Potter smiled. He got up from his seat and walked towards the window where a cage stood
with a bird inside it. It was a Caladrius, a snow-white bird with a silver moonlight glow.
Potter opened the cage door and pulled out the bird. He brought it to his desk and stood
before Spielman, who was watching him, agitated.
"You know, Muggles believed that these birds could take away sickness," Potter said. "These
are quite rare and expensive, and Muggles weren't wrong about them. They do have very
strong healing properties and can provide vitality."
Potter rolled the bird's neck, snapping it with ease. Spielman gasped, startled. He watched,
horrified as Potter cut off the head with a letter opener and allowed the blood to pour into his
glass.
"I get to have this from time to time," Potter explained. "Because everything in this world can
be bought, Erik."
Potter dropped the dead bird on his desk, grabbed the glass with blood and wine and drank it.
"I would advise you to think hard and long about how you would like to proceed with this,"
Potter said. "And of course, I am sure you're not planning to upset my son-in-law, the British
Minister for Magic, by taking away the man's husband. I am sure you understand that sort of
rudeness can get a man like you in trouble."
He looked at Tom, nodded and then left the room, shutting the door behind him. There was a
short silence and then Tom turned to the head of the ICW delegation.
"If you are smart," Tom said slowly, his eyes narrowed at Spielman, "you'd take my father-in-
law's generous offer. Because unlike him, I won't be so generous, and it wouldn't be the bird's
neck snapped and bleeding on this desk."
It took me a while to finish editing this and originally this was meant to include Harry's
birthday party too, but I didn't want it end on another cliffhanger. ;) A few, very long
chapters are left for this story, and I am excited.
I have published a new Tomarrymort story, that you can read, called: Solitude
Hope you liked the new chapter. Let me know which part you liked best? What do you
think about the new developments? What do you think Tom's Voldemort persona?
Please drop by the Archive and comment to let the creator know if you enjoyed their work!